An Historical Sketch of Sacerdotal Celibacy in the Christian Church
c. 41) is directed, not against him who actually marries, but against
those who assert that all may marry who have not the gift of chastity; and the same condemnation is pronounced on those who hold that marriage is preferable to celibacy. It is therefore treated purely as a matter of belief, the mere discussion of which is practical heresy. This was the form adopted by the council throughout in defining points of faith, as, for instance, in treating of Original Sin, which no one will pretend to be a matter of discipline—“Si quis per Jesu Christi Domini nostri gratiam quæ in baptismate confertur, reatum originalis peccati remitti negat ... anathema sit” (Sess. V. de Peccat. Orig. c. 5). Any one believing in the validity of priestly marriage is therefore not merely a contemner of a point of discipline but a heretic, and it is simply a libel on the good fathers of Trent to assert that they would anathematize as worthy of perpetual perdition a simple theoretical opinion on a matter of discipline.
Their intentions, moreover, as to this, are rendered indisputable by the answer of Pius V. in 1561, just before the final meeting of the Council, to the demand of Charles IX. for the concession of the cup to the laity. The pontiff states that he had considered that point and the marriage of the clergy to be matters of law, and therefore capable of alteration by due authority, but that, on expressing this opinion in the last conclave, he had been stigmatized as a Lutheran (Le Plat, Monument. Concil. Trident. IV. 734). This is confirmed by the remarks of Fra Paolo on the canon which pronounces the anathema on those who deny that a non-consummated marriage is dissolved by the vow of either spouse (Sess. XXIV. de Sacram. Matrim. c. vi.), where he alludes to the surprise caused by making it a point of faith—“Nel sesto anathematimismo del Matrimonio restarono molti ammirati che fosse posto per articolo di fede” (Ist. del Concil. Trident. Lib. VIII.—Ed. Helmstadt. II. 382).
The same view continued long to be upheld as orthodox. It would be difficult to find a work published under auspices more authoritative than Andreas Forster’s “De Cœlibatu Clericorum Dissertatio,” a thesis publicly read in the University of Dillingen in 1782, printed by authority, and dedicated to Pius VI. At that time there were serious efforts making, in the bosom of the church itself, to overthrow the rule of celibacy, and there was no hesitation on the part of the ecclesiastical rulers to avow the full purport of the Tridentine canons. Forster accordingly does not scruple to declare the truth as to the orthodox doctrine, nor was exception taken to his assertion by the authorities whose imprimatur the volume bears. The condemnation of those, he says, who rashly assert that marriage can be contracted by those in orders or bound by solemn vows of chastity is a dogma of faith, while the definition that virginity is better than matrimony is a dogma of morals—“Pro certo nos tenemus et ab omnibus Catholicis tenendum esse firmiter adserimus, Ecclesiam in laudato consilio recte omnino definiisse ... melius esse ac beatius manere in virginitate aut cœlibatu quam jungi matrimonio. Recte porro damnasse eos qui matrimonium a clericis in SS. Ordinibus constitutis, vel a regularibus castitatem solemniter professis, valide posse contrahi temere adsererent. Et hoc ultimum ad Dogma Fidei, illud prius ad Dogma Morum proculdubio pertinet” (op. cit. § xxxi. Dilingæ, 1782). In full accordance with this was the line of argument adopted by the advocates of the church in 1831, when it became necessary to overrule the decision which had authorized the marriage of the priest Dumonteil. They represented that to permit the civil marriage of a priest was, in fact, to persecute the church, because “qui veut une religion la veut avec ses dogmes, et la chasteté du prêtre est un de ceux de l’église Catholique” (Bouhier de l’Écluse, de l’État du Prêtre en France, p. 31).
I do not doubt that the peculiar dialectics by which Bishop Dupanloup explained away all that was shocking in the Syllabus of December, 1864 (La Convention et l’Encyclique, Paris, 1865), might make out a tolerably fair line of argument to prove that the Tridentine fathers did not do what they meant to do. In the subtle insincerity which pervades the formulas of the Latin church, allowing either side of a question to be affirmed as opportunity serves, the formulas of Trent constitute no exception. Thus if the rule of celibacy were to be abrogated, I presume that it could be readily accomplished by doing away with the vow of chastity and assuming that the administering of that vow is merely a matter of discipline. The papal power to dispense from vows is likewise too well established to be called in question, as was shown by the decision of the council of Trent on that very matter. The Latin church, in fact, has ample resources to enable it to adopt any line of policy that its rulers may consider adapted to the exigencies of the present or of the future; and if it should, at any time, consider sacerdotal and cenobitic celibacy undesirable, I am perfectly willing to concede that it would find no difficulty in setting aside or eluding the Tridentine anathemas; yet none the less would those anathemas remain to show us what was the position which it occupied in the sixteenth century. Meanwhile it may be suggested to the orthodox who regard celibacy as merely disciplinary that the church holds both marriage and ordination to be sacraments, and that a definition that the two are incompatible and a decision as to which of the two must give way to the other can hardly in the nature of things, or by any rational use of language, be regarded as merely a matter of discipline. Those, indeed, who are inclined to take such view, may well bear in mind the fate of Panzini, who, regarding celibacy as a point of discipline, was condemned, in 1860, by the Roman Inquisition to twelve years’ incarceration for merely writing an essay, which never was printed, arguing in favor of its impolicy.
INDEX.
Abbey lands, disposition of in Germany, 434, 437, 439 in England, 454, 482 in Scotland, 508 confiscated in France, 589 in Italy, 609-10
Abbo, St., of Fleury, his martyrdom, 153
Abbot of Langdon, case of, 451 of Crossed-Friars, case of, 457 of Walden, his marriage, 463
Abbots, their marriage, in Hungary, 401 execution of English, 457
Abelard, his description of monachism, 264 his marriage, 269 his “Sic et Non,” 316 his answer to Heloise, 348 on abuse of confessional, 350
Abingdon, Abbey of, 167
Absalom of Scania, 252
Absolution, purchasable, in Manichæism, 44 marketable value of, in Rome, 356, 428 mutual, of guilty priests, 428 by partner in guilt, 346, 575-7, 633
Abstinence from women in pagan priesthood, 49
Abstinentes, heresy of, 33
Abuse of confessional (see _Confessional_).
Abyssinian church, customs of, 92
Accomplice, immunity of, 291
Acephali, 109, 115
Adalbero of Metz ordains sons of priests, 154
Adam de la Halle on Alexander IV., 334
Adam de Marisco, his labors, 292
Adela of Flanders, seeks to enforce celibacy, 260
Adela of Flanders, miraculous cure of, 404
Adelaide of Savoy, her interposition asked, 203
Adolph of Nassau, Archb. of Mainz, 412
Adorateurs de Jésus, 613
Adrian I. asserts the morality of his clergy, 135
Adrian VI., his views on priestly marriage, 422 reproaches Diet of Nürnberg, 424 on Luther’s abrogation of celibacy, 432
Adulphe, frère, case of, 637
Adulterous wives of priests to be put away, 39 of Huguenot pastors, 498
Adultery, clerical, habitual, 247 immunity for, 447 toleration of, in Mexico, 565 less objectionable than marriage, 627
Ælfric, St., of Canterbury, his canons, 172
Æneas Sylvius (see _Pius II._).
Africa, celibacy urged on, 66 introduction of celibacy in, 73 immorality in, 81 married bishops in, 89 Donatist monks in, 107
Agapetæ, scandals of, 41, 50, 54, 78 forbidden by Council of Elvira, 50 by Council of Ancyra, 54 by Council of Nicæa, 54 by Emp. Honorius, 55
Agde, Council of, in 506, 80
Age, minimum, for vows in early church, 100, 105 under Council of Trent, 587 in France, 585 in Tuscany, 587 under Pius IX., 611 for ordination under Council of Trent, 624 for resident women, 626
Agen, Manichæism in 1100, 207
Agnes, Empress, deprived of regency, 201
Agrippa, Cornelius, on the clergy, 415 on licenses to sin, 428 on character of Roman prelates, 429
Agudi, Father, case of, 607
Ain-Traz, Synod of, in 1835, 91
Aix, Council of, in 1850, 626
Aix-la-Chapelle, proportion of clergy in, 631 Council of, in 817, 138 in 836, 137
Alain de l’Isle on clerical morals, 321 on Waldenses, 374
Alberic, Cardinal, and the heretics, 370
Alberic of Marsico, his crimes, 153
Alberic of Ostia, Legate to England, 281
Albero of Liége permits priestly marriage, 247
Albero of Mercke, heresy of, 196
Albero of Verdun, his efforts at reform, 264
Albert II. (Emp.) fines concubinary priests, 396
Albert of Bavaria asks for clerical marriage, 531, 539
Albert of Brandenburg embraces Lutheranism, 366 founds kingdom of Prussia, 434
Albert of Hamburg on chastity, 181 his measures of reform, 189
Albert of Mainz seeks to restrain priestly marriage, 419 his proposed marriage, 434
Albigenses, heresy of, 207 attacked by St. Bernard, 331 their tenets, 367
Alby, extent of heresy in, 370 Council of, in 1850, 626
Alcobaça, Abbot of, head of Order of St. Michael, 365
Alcuin on disorders of Saxon nunneries, 165
Aldebert of Le Mans, licentiousness of, 264
Aldhelm, St., on virginity, 162
Alemanni, unchastity of, 118
Alexander II. seeks archbishopric of Milan, 209 his election to Papacy, 200 his estimate of Damiani, 186 suppresses the Liber Gomorrh., 188 he enforces the reform, 202 his discouragement, 204 he protects the Jews, 205 his two missions to Milan, 213 he authorizes war against marriage, 215 he sends legation to Milan, 217 his efforts in Spain, 303 his letter to William the Conqueror, 272 his death, 206 enforcement of celibacy attributed to him, 225
Alexander III. on married canons, 270 his efforts in England, 281 his endeavors at reform, 319, 321 he inclines to priestly marriage, 325 he confirms Order of St. James, 364 on hereditary transmission, 516
Alexander IV., his reforms, 333 on corruption of laity by priesthood, 350
Alexander VI., his character, 345 he grants marriage to Portuguese orders, 365 his patience with Savonarola, 386 he reforms the Benedictines, 403
Alexander VII. defines solicitation, 575, 576
Alexandria, disorderly monachism in, 106
Alfonso the Wise on origin of celibacy, 28 forbids priestly marriage, 308
Alfonso VI. (Castile) asks for a legate, 304
Alfonso VIII. of Leon, 306
Alfonso I. (Portugal) founds orders of Avis and St. Michael, 365
Alfonso I. (Naples) collects tax on concubines, 399
Alfred on chastity of nuns, 166
Allocution Acerbissimum, 609
Alphonso Liguori, St., on clerical corruption, 587
Altmann of Passau, his mission to Constance, 229 his enforcement of celibacy, 230
Alva, Duke of, enforces reception of Council of Trent, 553
Alvarez Pelayo, on Spanish clergy, 311
Amalfi (see _Melfi_).
Amandus of Maestricht, case of, 126
Amandus, papal legate to Spain, 304
Amboise, edict of, in 1562, 499
Ambrose, St., admits disregard of celibacy, 67 condemns Jovinian, 69 priestly marriage attributed to him, 250
Ambrose of Camaldoli, 393
America, Spanish church in, 563-66 (See, also, _United States_ and _Canada_.)
Ammonius Saccas, 39
Ammonius, St., his fortitude, 188
Anabaptists, the, 438
Anaclet, antipope, enforces celibacy, 342
Anastasius (Emp.), revolts against, 107
Anathema, nature of, 640 for disbelief in celibacy, 536
Ancarano, his opinion as to priests’ concubines, 339
Anchorite, estimate of chastity of, 348
Ancyra, Council of, in 314, regulates priestly marriage, 51 forbids agapetæ, 54 on vows of celibacy, 97
Andrea of Vallombrosa on Milanese clergy, 210
Andreas of Lunden on concubines, 197
Andrew of Tarentum, case of, 123
Angelric of Vasnau, case of, 142
Angers, clergy of, their demoralization, 394
Anglican bishops, regulations for their marriage, 489
Anglican clergy, popular contempt for, 476 restrictions on their marriage, 489 flexibility of their faith, 490 evil influences on their marriage, 494 their position, 497
Anglican Church, the, 444-497 Queen Elizabeth’s estimate of, 491
Anglican priests, manual of confessional for, 634
Anglican ritual, marriage service in, 476
Anglo-Irish church, disorders of, 298
Anglo-Saxon church, celibacy enforced, 162 disorders of, in 10th century, 147, 167
Angoulême, case occurring in, 269
Anjou, Council of, in 453, 79 in 1262, 1291, 1312, 332, 350
Ann of Cleves, her marriage, 470
Annates, increase of, by the Popes, 412 withdrawn by Henry VIII., 450
Anomalies, ethical, 269, 347, 627
Anse, Council of, in 990, 156
Anselm, St., on sacraments of sinful priests, 195 his reforms, 273 his death in 1109, 278
Anselmo di Badagio (see _Alexander II._).
Anselmo, St., of Lucca, his persecution, 222
Antealtaria, Abbot of, 308
Anthony, St., retires to the desert, 97
Anthony of Ephesus, crimes of, 85
Anthony of Prague enforces Tridentine canons, 534 heresy encouraged by corruption, 556
Antichrist, anticipation of, 394
Antidicomarianitarians, heresy of, 69
Antioch, Council of, 42
Antisacerdotalism of Vigilantius, 71 mediæval, 370 sqq.
Antoin, married canons of, 270
Antonelli, Cardinal, imprisons Panzini, 602 his daughter, 631
Antwerp, Synod of, in 1610, 557, 562
Apel, John, punished for marrying, 424
Apocalypsis Goliæ, 284
Apollinaris of Rhodes, 118
Apollo, celibacy of priestess of, 50
Apology for Confession of Augsburg, 436
Apostle, Junia the, 60
Apostolical canons on digami, 37 permit priestly marriage, 39 marriage honored in, 48
Apostolical constitutions on digami, 37 permit priestly marriage, 39 order of widows in, 42 honors rendered to marriage, 48
Apostolical Letter, Multiplices inter, 602
Apostoloci, heresy of, 97
Apotactici, heresy of, 33, 44
Appeals discountenanced at Trent, 538
Appeals to Rome, immunity caused by, 139 their effect, 322 forbidden by Alex. IV., 334
Ap Rice and the Abbot of Walden, 463
Aquinas, St. Thomas, on origin of celibacy, 28 on sacraments of sinful priests, 195 on vows, 321 on absolution by guilty confessors, 575
Arab monachism, nature of, 102
Arabic version of Nicene canons, 53
Aranda, Council of, in 1473, 400
Archembald of Sens, his evil courses, 153
Arechis of Beneventum, law of, 127
Aretino, abuses in church of, 147
Arfastus of Thetford, 272
Arialdo, St., seeks archbishopric of Milan, 209 raises question of priestly marriage, 211 is excommunicated, 212 procures excom. of Archbp. Guido, 216 his martyrdom, 217
Arianism, celibacy under, 120
Arith, Wm., on clerical disorders, 501
Arles, Council of, in 314, 51 in 441, 69,79, 105
Armagh, hereditary archbishops of, 296
Armagh, Council of, in 1854, 626
Armenia, hereditary priesthood in, 90
Armenia, Council of, in 1362, 90
Arnald of Brescia, heresy of, 195
Arnaldo de Peralta, his reforms, 309
Arnolfo, a reformer, fate of, 341
Arran, Regent, favors the Reformation, 507
Artemis, virgins for priestesses of, 50
Arthur of Britanny a canon of Tours, 307
Articles, Thirty-nine, clerical marriage in the, 490
Articles, Forty-two, clerical marriage in the, 475, 490
Articles, the Six, enacted by Parliament, 467 heretics burnt under them, 458 their modification, 471 repealed in 1547, 472 popular call for their restoration, 475 revived under Mary, 478 repealed under Elizabeth, 487
Artois, Council of, in 1025, 369
Arundel of Canterbury on Lollardry, 381
Asceticism, unknown to early Jews, 21 in Brahmanism and Buddhism, 23 in Essenism, 25 not encouraged by Christ, 25 tendency to, in Ebionism, 27 tendencies of St. Paul, 31
Asceticism, commencement of, in the church, 31 repressed by the church, 32 of heretics, 33 stimulated by the heresies, 34 and by influence of Buddhism, 35 growth of, in the church, 36 stimulated by neo-Platonism, 39 and by Manichæism, 45 combated by the church, 48 overcomes all resistance, 49 still voluntary in 4th century, 58 becomes obligatory, 59 reproved by Council of Gangra, 61 voluntary in the East, 84 severity of, in Armenia, 90 of monachism, 97 instances in 11th century, 227 spreads among the laity, 241 of Irish church, 160, 296 neglect of, in Spain, 307 mediæval, 347, 359 of military orders, 362 of Albigenses, 368 of Fraticelli, 377 of Wickliffe, 381 of Hussites, 383 exclusion of women from monasteries, 404 influence of, on solicitation, 574 in modern times, 612
Aschaffenburg, Council of, in 1292, 196
Ashera, worship of, 21
Assembly, National, secularizes church property, 589 legalizes clerical marriage, 590
_Assermentés_ priests, 590
Assideans, 24
Astorga, Bishop of, on Council of Trent, 539
Athanasius on priestly marriage, 58
Athenagoras on morals of Christians, 33 on second marriage, 36 on asceticism, 103
Athravas, hereditary functions of, 23
Atto of Vercelli on female ministration, 60 on dilapidation of property, 146 on married priests, 152
Attys, worship of, 50
Augsburg, the Confession of, 436
Augsburg, Council of, in 10th century, 55 in 952, 149 in 1548, 514, 525 in 1567, 561 in 1610, 549
Augsburg, Diet of, in 1518, 416 in 1530, 435 in 1548, 441, 524 in 1551 and 1555, 443
Augsburg Formula of Reformation, 524, 526, 528
Augustin of Canterbury, 161
Augustin, St., on Jewish high-priesthood, 22 on marriage, 47, 314 on marriage of nuns, 104 on Manichæism, 46 his testimony as to Jovinian, 70 he enforces celibacy, 74 on temporary nature of vows, 97 on wandering monks, 102 on danger of female residence, 138
Augustin, Rule of, adopted by military orders, 362, 363
Augustinians of Gloucester, suppression of, 457 of Nürnberg, secularization of, 425 of Saxony, revolution of, 420
Aunts, residence of, forbidden, 138, 628
Aurelius, St., enforces celibacy, 73
Auricular confession, commencement of, 566
Ausch, Congrès fraternel in 1793, 593
Ausch, Council of, in 1851, 626
Australia, Council of, in 1844, 633
Austrasia, reforms in, 130
Austria, enforcement of celibacy in, 251 efforts for clerical marriage in, 601 civil marriage in, 605 monastic orders in 1859, 615
Autun, Council of, in 690, 80
Auvergne, Council of, in 535, 80
Auxerre, Council of, in 578, 80 persecution of celibacy in, 593
Availles, case occurring at, in 1817, 635
Avellano, monks of, 186
Avesbury, nunnery of, its morals, 282
d’Avesnes, case of the, 323
Avignon, residence of popes in, 342 Council of, in 1594, 560 in 1725 and 1849, 626
Avila, his casuistry, 578
Avis, order of, 365
Avranches, Council of, in 1172, 319
Ayenbite of Inwyt, 348
Azzo, Archbishop of Milan, 218
Babueus grants marriage in orders, 92
Babueus excommunicates Barsuma, 92
Bachelors ineligible to episcopate, 38
Badegisilus of Le Mans, 118
Baden, petitions for clerical marriage in 1828, 601
Bahia, Council of, in 1707, 626
Baithusin, hereditary priesthood of, 22
Bale, Bishop, his writings, 473, 480
Bâle, Council of, 395 reconciles the Hussites, 382 clerical marriage suggested in, 406 canons of, affirmed in Scotland, 1559, 505 revived in Germany, 528
Balsamon on legislation of Greek church, 87
Baltimore, Councils of, in 1829, 1843, 633 in 1840, 627 in 1866, 627, 633
Bamburg, troubles of, in 1431, 395 Synod of, in 1491, 196 morals of clergy in 1505, 431
Bandello, Bishop, his novels, 430
Bangor, morals of clergy of, 463, 494
Baptism by immoral priests invalid, 162 repetition of, refused, 163
Baptisma igneum, 438
Barbarians, the, and the Church, 117-25 superior morality of, 82
Bardsey, Culdees of, 301
Bari, military bishops of, 180
Barnabite college at Monza, case of, 621
Baronius on Gregory of Nazianzum, 58
Barrios, Bish. of Santafé, regulations of, 563
Barsuma of Nisibi, case of, 92
Barsumas, Abbot, at Ephesus, 107
Bartelot, John, case of, 457
Bartholomew of Bracara, his demand for reforms, 534
Basil, St., his strictness, 84
Basilica of Leo the Philosopher, 87
Basilides, heresy of, 34
Bastardy increased by celibacy, 629, 631
Bathing, promiscuous, 41, 42
Baumgartner, Aug., his speech at Trent, 518
Bavaria, marriage of nuns forbidden, in 772, 135 demand for clerical marriage in, 442, 531, 536 clerical marriage after C. of Trent, 554 immorality of clergy, 16th cent., 548 abuse of confessional in, 570 proportion of clergy in, 631
Beards, clergy insist on wearing, 553
Beatoun, Cardinal, his immorality, 503 his proclamation of 1540, 511
Bede on Aaron’s linen breeches, 65 on the rule of celibacy, 161
Beggars’ Petition, the, 453
Beggars, legislation against, under Henry VIII., 455
Begghards, the, 376
Beguines, condemnation of, 377
Belgium, monastic orders in, 615 clerical attacks on public schools, 623 clerical morality in, 629
Bellarmine on story of Paphnutius, 57 his defence of celibacy, 581
Beltis, 21
Benchor, oratory of, 295
Benedict VIII. enforces celibacy, 178
Benedict IX., character of, 179 he sells the papacy, 184 is reinstated as pope, 187
Benedict XIV. approves of Savonarola, 386 on abuse of confessional, 577
Benedict of Camin on clerical morals, 401
Benedict the Levite on residence of female relations, 138
Benedict, St., of Nursia, 111 his example followed, 246 salvation procured by him, 335 rule of, becomes universal, 131 supplemented by Louis-le-Débonnaire, 136 adopted by military orders, 362
Benedictine order, saints in, 113 its services to civilization, 357 its morals in 15th century, 403
Benefices held by tenure of chastity, 311 bestowal of, on servants, 515 hereditary (see _Hereditary Transmission_).
Benefit of clergy for married priests, 291 extended to concubines, 339
Benevento, Council of, in 1693, 574, 626
Benzo, his account of Hildebrand, 197 his use of the term Paterins, 212 on Nicolitism, 238
Berenger of Tours on priestly marriage, 256
Bernald of Constance on Paphnutius, 56
Bernard, St., reforms effected by him, 265 miracle wrought by him, 266 on barbarism of Ireland, 296 his hymn on St. Malachi, 297 on dissolution of priestly marriage, 316 his defence of marriage, 331 on influence of papal court, 346 on the Albigenses, 368 on the Petrobrusians, 370 on Manichæan abhorrence of marriage, 545
Bernard of Font-Cauld on Waldenses, 374
Bernard of Tiron preaches reform, 258
Bernhardi, Bart., marries in 1521, 419
Bernhardus Baptisatus, his sermon, 391
Bertrand, St., of Comminges, miracle by, 269
Berytus, Synod of, in 448, 82
Besançon, Synod of, in 1707, 562, 576
Beverege, John, burnt, 510
Beza, Theod., on marriage in Anglican church, 489
Bèze, charter to monastery of, 265
Bhagavad-gita, the, 92
Bhikshus and Bhikshunis, Bhuddist, 94
Bigamy of priests in 10th century, 167 in 11th century, 172, 181 in 12th century, 247 caused by celibacy, 278 penalties of, for clerical marriage, 598
Bigorre, legalized concubinage in, 197
Bilio, Card., author of the Syllabus, 604
Bisantio of Bari, 180
Bishops, marriage of (see _Marriage_).
Bishops to be husbands of one wife, 38 number of digamous, 37, 159 their morality in Coptic church, 93 witnesses required for their chastity, 131 they are nominated by the Merovingians, 118 are held responsible for diocesan property, 123 their power increased by institution of canons, 135 wer-gild for their godsons, 162 their military character in 10th century, 153 in 11th century, 180 they are attacked by Damiani, 198 their lukewarmness as to celibacy, 233 penalties for tolerating priestly marriage, 242 their wives rank as countesses, 259 their children eligible to ordination, 298 female intercourse forbidden to them, 303 they sell licenses to sin, 389, 432, 559 concubinary, punishment for, at Trent, 538 opposing clerical marriage exiled, 594 their restoration of celibacy in France, 595 Irish, poverty of, 297
Bishops, Anglican, regulation for marriage of, 489 position of their wives, 495
Bishoprics, hereditary, in Britanny, 259 in Ireland, 296 created from English monasteries, 459
Blacater, Bishop, persecutes Lollards, 501
Bloodletting of monks, 138
Bohemia, priestly marriage in 11th century, 243 enforcement of celibacy in, 246 marriage in post-Tridentine church, 554 Waldensian refugees in, 375 Begghards in, 377 Hussitism in, 383 Orthodox Brethren in, 385
Bois-le-duc, Synod of, in 1571, 562 in 1612, 558
Boisset, permission to marry refused to him, 597
Bologna, Cossa as Legate in, 344
Bologna, Council of Trent transferred to, 442, 521
Bonaventura, St., on absolution, 346 on abuse of confessional, 350 on dilapidation of church property, 407
Boniface IX., legalized simony under, 398 he relaxes the rule of Fulda, 404
Boniface of Canterbury, 290
Boniface of Lausanne, his fate, 341
Boniface, St., his scruples as to Frankish clergy, 128 he reforms the Frankish clergy, 131 attempts on his life, 133 on infanticide caused by celibacy, 137 on Anglo-Saxon church, 163 he founds Abbey of Fulda, 404
Bonizo of Piacenza, martyrdom of, 222
Bonn, Old Catholic Synod of, in 1878, 604
Bonner, Bishop, deprives married priests, 478 his visitation of London, 479 scandals concerning him, 486
Bonosus, his heresy, 68
Books of canon law burned by Luther, 418
Bora, Catharine von, marries Luther, 425
Bordeaux, Councils of, in 1583, 1624, 560 in 1850, 626
Borgia, Roderic, his character, 345
Boseteha, wife of Cosmo of Prague, 245
Bosnia, heretics of, 369
Bossaert d’Avesnes, case of, 323
Bossu d’Arras, Le, on Alex. IV., 334
Bossuet, his probable marriage, 582
Botoa, monastery of, 306
Bougaud, Abbé, on dangers to the church, 638
Bourges, Council of, in 1031, 179 in 1528, 515 in 1584, 560 in 1800, 595 in 1850, 626
Bourne, Sir John, complains of Chapter of Worcester, 491 his quarrel with Sandys, 496
Boussard, Geoffroi, on origin of celibacy, 29 on dispensing power, 407
Boutaric on droit de marquette, 355
Bouthors on droit de marquette, 355
Boyer on droit de marquette, 354
Bracton on position of concubines, 197
Braga, Councils of, in 563, 572, and 675, 80
Brahmanism, asceticism of, 23
Branda, Cardinal, his reforms, 392
Brazil, suppression of monasteries in, 609
Brecislas of Bohemia, 243
Bremen, Council of, in 1266, 253
Breslau, Council of, in 1279, 252 in 1416, 338 in 1580, 555
Brethren of the Cross, 385
Brethren, Orthodox, 385
Bribes to avert suppression of monasteries, 454
Brice, St., case of, 77
Bridfrith, his life of St. Dunstan, 166
Bristol, see of, created, 460
Britanny, church of, 120 priestly marriage in, 259 heresies in, 371
British clergy, their corruption, 159 church, discipline of, 160 in 9th century, 171
Brixen, schismatic Synod of, in 1080, 238 orthodox Synod, in 1603, 562
Brothels kept by prelates, 429 frequented by priests, 586
de Brou-Laurière, case of, 600
Bruges, Synod of, in 1693, 562
Brunhilda, appeal of Gregory I. to, 124
Bruno of Toul created pope, 187
Bruno St., reforms effected by, 265 founds the Grande Chartreuse, 404
Brunswick, chapter of, in 1476, 400
Brut y Tywysogion on married clergy, 171
Bruys, Pierre de, his heresy, 370
Bucer insists on priestly marriage, 441
Buddha, Sankhyism of, 23 his legend, 35 death of his mother, 68
Buddhism, its influence on Christianity, 34 its connection with Manichæism, 44 its system of monachism, 94
Bulgaria, Manichæism transmitted through, 207
Bulgarian church, rules for, 141
Bull, Papal, Exsurge Domine, 418 Ad canonum, 516 Cum primum, 548 Horrendum, 548 Ad Romanum, 549 Quæ ordini, 549 Postquam verus, 550 Quemadmodum sollicitus, 552 Cum sicut nuper, 568 Universi Dominici gregis, 569 Etiam pastoralis, 577 Sacramentum pœnitentiæ, 577 Auctorem fidei, 587 suppressing English monasteries, 447-9 excommunicating Henry VIII., 455 defining Cardinal Pole’s powers, 478 reconciling England, 483
Burckhardt of Worms on celibacy, 178 his instructions to confessors, 566
Bure, Idelette de, Calvin’s wife, 498
Burghley endeavors to restrain Q. Elizabeth, 492
Burgos, Council of, in 1080, 304
Burial, Christian denied to married priests, 192
Burial, Christian, denied to concubines, 310
Burmah, number of monks in, 95
Burnet, Bishop, on the English monasteries, 451 on the Beggars’ Petition, 453
Burning alive threatened for married priests, in 1524, 423
Butler, John, on marriage of clergy, 466
Cabassut on Apostolical canons, 49
Cadalus, his election as antipope, 200 his cause embraced by Milan, 215
Cadam, Transaction of, 439
Cadière, Catherine, case of, 579
Cæsarea, Synod of, about 360, 61
Cæsarius, St., of Arles, Rule of, 112 on marriage of nuns, 111
Cæsarius of Heisterbach on influence of priesthood, 346
Cain Patraic, the, 159 two classes of bishops in, 295
Caisho, priest of, his case, 485
Calabria, celibacy enforced in, 76, 320
Calatrava, knights of, marriage permitted to, 364
Calini, Archbp., his reports from Trent, 534
Calixtins, the, 383
Calixtus I., his laxity, 37
Calixtus II., on Manichæism, 208 he enforces celibacy in France, 267 his consequent unpopularity, 268 he declares marriage dissolved by orders, 313 on abuse of confessional, 567
Calixtus, his work on celibacy, 583
Calne, Council of, in 978, 170
Calvi, Donato, on religious orders, 96
Calvin, his confession of faith, 498 his marriage, 498
Calvinism, 498-513 its discipline, 498 clerical marriage a matter of course, 498, 510
Calvinist converts, marriage of, 499
Camaldoli, monks of, 183 their demoralization, 393
Cambrai, Manichæism in 1025, 207 Hildebrandine doctrine punished, 236 Council of, in 1025, 208 in 1550, 528 in 1565 and 1567, 559 in 1631, 560 in 1661, 576
Camin, Synods of, in 1454 and 1492, 402
Campeggi, Card., persecutes married priests, 423 heresy justified by clerical immorality, 430 assists in suppression of English monasteries, 449
Canada, duration of vows in, 613 modern Councils of, 626-7, 633
Canonical age for resident women, 626
Canons, Apostolical (see _Apostolical_).
Canons regular, institution of, 134 of Fécamp, expulsion of, 155 discussion concerning their marriage, 263
Canons are forced to cloistered life, 265 marriage of, in 12th century, 270 hereditary in England, 272 replace Culdees in Scotland, 300 laxity of their rule, 307 of Compostella, reform of, 305 demoralization of, in 15th cent., 399 their unclerical habits, Germany, 14th century, 340 of Brunswick in 1476, their morals, 401 of Lausanne, their demoralization, 429 of Munster, refuse to be reformed, 548 of Milan, their contest with St. Charles Borromeo, 550
Canterbury, Christ Church, in 11th cent. 171 number of married clergy in, 489
“Capacities” given to ejected monks, 455
Capito, Wolf. Fab., persecutes married priests, 420 is married, 423
Caprara, Legate, on married priests, 596
Capua, Council of, in 389, 68
Caraffa, Card., on need of reformation, 522
Cardinalate, childlessness a prerequisite, 550
Cardinal’s college, founded by Wolsey, 447
Carinthia, enforcement of celibacy in, 233
Carloman seeks to reform the church, 128, 130 enters Monte Casino, 134
Carlostadt advocates priestly marriage, 419 favors the Anabaptists, 438
Carlovingian alliance with the church, 128 civilization, its disappearance, 143
Carmelites, corruption of, 353, 587
Carnarvonshire, complaints of priests in, 400
Carpocrates, heresy of, 34
Carracioli, Bishop of Troyes, married, 499
Carterius, Bishop, case of, 37
Carthage, immorality in, 82 Council of, in 348, 100 in 390, 73 in 397, 73 in 398, 49, 73 in 401, 74 in 411, 107 in 419, 74
Carthusian asceticism, 359
Carthusians of London resist Henry VIII., 450
Cashel, Archb. of, on children of bishops, 297
Cashel, Council of, in 1171, 298 in 1853, 633
Cassander, G., on clerical marriage, 542
Cassianus, heresy of, 33
Cassianus, St., Rule of, 101, 110
Cassiodorus relates the story of Paphnutius, 57
Caste, priestly, dangers of creating, 225
Castel-Fuerte, Marques del, 565
Castration of Galli, 50
Castro, Alfonso de, heresy justified by clerical wickedness, 430
Casuistry applied to solicitation, 571, 575, 576 its effect on morality, 578
Catarini, Card., and the Vatican Council, 604
Catarino, Ambrogio, 418
Cathari, heresy of, 207, 367
Catharine von Bora, 425
Catherine de Medicis on reception of Council of Trent, 546 her efforts for clerical marriage, 559
Catholicism, observances borrowed from Buddhism, 35 from Mazdeism, 44
Catholics, persecution of, in Scotland, 512
Caumont, case of married priest of, 258
Cavour introduces civil marriage in Sardinia, 605 suppresses monasteries in Sardinia, 609
Céle-dé, or Culdee, 299
Celestin III. on vows and marriage, 321 on hereditary priesthood, 326
Celestin (pseudo) on abuse of confessional, 567
Celibacy, its influence on history, 19 its post-apostolical origin admitted, 27 not favored in Apost. Constitutions, 48 its enforcement by Council of Elvira in 305, 50 not required by Council of Nicæa, 53 its first enforcement, 64 opposition to it, 67 attributed to Gregory I., 124 and to Gregory VII., 224 its necessity to the church, 193, 225 deprecated by Alexander III., 325 its final enforcement, 330 its results, 331-361 Wickliffe’s opinion of it, 379 condemned by Lollards, 381 maintained by Hussites, 384 not observed by Orthodox Brethren, 385 nor by Brethren of the Cross, 385 evils attributed to, 394 is deprecated in 15th century, 405 is denounced by Luther, 418 is the main obstacle to reunion, 544 is made a point of faith in 1528, 515 and by Council of Trent, 536, 640 and by the Inquisition, 603 attacked in the 18th century, 582 persecuted in French Revolution, 593 reëstablished after the Terror, 595 modern policy of the church, 602-4 is likely to be maintained in the future, 607, 608 modern influence of, 638
Celibates, disabilities of, removed, 99
Celsus of Armagh, 296
Celtic churches, original purity of, 295
Cenobitic life, commencement of, 97
Ceres, celibacy of priestesses of, 50
Cereza, father, of Monza, 621
Cesarini, Cardinal, on revolt against church, 395
Ceylon, number of monks in, 95
Chalcedon, Council of, in 451, 107
Chalons, Council of, in 649, 80 in 813, 567 in 893, 142
Chantries, English, absorption of, 459
Charibert, his laws on forcible marriage, 120
Charity of the monastic orders, 358
Charity in modern church, 612, 616 religious organization of, in France, 615
Charlemagne, his efforts to reform the church, 134, 135
Charles, Archduke, asks for clerical marriage, 544
Charles Borromeo, St., his reforms, 550-2
Charles-le-Chauve on appellate jurisdiction of Rome, 139
Charles the Lame imposes fines on concubinage, 339
Charles Martel oppresses the church, 129 his punishment, 130
Charles IV. (Emp.) urges reform, 340
Charles V. (Emp.), his policy in 1530, 435 he temporizes with the Reformation, 439, 440 he issues the Interim, 441 he demands dispensations for married priests, 442 he accepts the Reformation, 443 his demands for Council of Trent, 519 he objects to its transfer to Bologna, 521 on the reforms of Paul III., 522 he seeks to reform the German church, 524
Charles VII. (France) fines concubinary priests, 396
Charles IX. (France) asks for clerical marriage, 533, 641
Charles de Valois intervenes in Flanders, 323
Charter-House, monks of, their fate, 450
Charter of Oswalde’s Law, 169
Charters of 1814 and 1830, 600
Chartier, Alain, on condition of church, 394
Chartreuse, strictness of rules of, 404
Chassidim, 24
Chastity, estimate of, by Cassianus, 102 feudal tenure by, 153, 311 gift of, to be obtained by seeking, 331, 530, 536 gift of, assured by Council of Trent, 624 sacrifice of, 21 vows of, their introduction, 41 their perversion, 127 required for holy orders, 179 in military orders, 362 maintained in the Six Articles, 468 papal dispensation for, 535, 642 never dispensed for, 611 prelates at Trent sworn to support, 533
Châtillon, Cardinal de, his marriage, 499
Chaucer on priest’s children, 338 on corrupting influence of priests, 351
Chavard, Abbé, case of, 601 on age of ordination, 624
Chelsea, Council of, in 787, 164
Chepstow, Abbess of, accuses Dr. London, 457
Cheregato, Legate, on priestly immunity, 424
Chertsey, monastery of, reformed, 169
Chester, see of, created, 460
Childebert, his laws on forcible marriage, 120
Child-bearing, importance of, among the Jews, 21
Child-bearing, St. Paul’s estimate of, 31
Children cause ineligibility to episcopate, 87 and to cardinalate, 550
Children of ecclesiastics (see _Hereditary transmission_). in tenth century, 145, 146, 148, 149 ordained by Adalbero of Metz, 154 disabilities of, in 11th century, 179 yet openly provided for, 181 ineligibility of, 184 refused preferment by Henry III., 187 admitted by Alexander II., 205 declared infamous in 1266, 253 openly acknowledged in Normandy, 258 have claims on paternal benefice, 265 disallowed in England in 1102, 274 their ordination permitted in 1107, 276 refused in 1144, 281 universal in 13th century, 285 forbidden in 1237, 288 universal in Spain, 304, 305, 311, 400 favored by dispensing power, 321 forbidden by Celestin III., 326 rendered heritable by Fred. II., 335 fruitless efforts to prevent it, 327-8 legislation of Clement VII., 616 papal dispensation for, 517 regulations in Scotland, 1559, 505 of Council of Trent, 538 of Pius V., 548 of Synod of Augsburg, 1610, 549 of Salzburg, 1616, 554 of Osnabruck in 1625, 558 of apostate priests in France, 500 of priests by slaves emancipated, 563 of knights of Spanish orders, 364 of Anglican priests legitimated in 1552, 476 legitimated under Elizabeth, 488 held illegitimate, 494, 496
China, development of Buddhism in, 95
Christ, his toleration of Essenism, 25
Christ Church College founded by Wolsey, 447
Christians, puritanism of early, 32
Christians, heretics of Bosnia, 369
Christianity, purifying influence of, 354
Chrodegang of Metz, Rule of, 134
Chrysostom, St. John, on virginity, 85
Church, morals of (see _Morals_). the Ante-Nicene, 31 the Latin, its influence, 17 its temporalities endangered by marriage, 63, 123 extension of its jurisdiction, 139 growth of its independence, 143 it is a protector of the weak, 182 necessity of celibacy to it, 193 its responsibility, 355 enmity against it in 15th cent., 394, 395 its growth under Pius IX., 608 its superiority to the State, 618 its modern claims, 639 lands, question of, in Reformation, 437, 439 fate of, in England, 454
Church lands, fate of, in Scotland, 508 in France, 589 in Italy, 609
Churches, confessions only to be heard in, 574
Churching of wives of priests forbidden, 595
Cincinnati, Council of, in 1861, 627
Cipriani, Gius., on clerical morality, 632
Circester, Synod of, in 1289, 350
Circumcelliones, 107, 109
Cirita, Juan, St., case of, 111
Cistercian order, relaxation of, 403
Cistercian Rule adopted by knights of Calatrava and Avis, 364, 365
Cities, monks not allowed to enter, 108
Civil marriage, 605-7 practical control of church over, 607
Civil power invoked to remove concubines, 559, 560
Civilization promoted by monachism, 113, 357
Clarembald, Abbot, his morals, 281
Clares, barefooted, in Paris, 612
Claude of Evreux essays reform, 560
Claude of Macon essays reform, 515
Claustrals, Franciscan, 402
Clemanges on condition of church, 343, 388, 389, 390, 394
Clement II. appointed by Henry III., 184 endeavors to suppress simony, 185
Clement III. on self-mutilation, 40 on children of bishops, 297 enforces the canons, 326
Clement IV. enforces celibacy in Austria, 251 and in Denmark, 253
Clement VII. maintains the claims of the church, 435 his bulls to Wolsey, 448 on hereditary transmission, 516
Clement III. (Antipope) on concubinage, 238 his death in 1100, 242
Clement of Alexandria on heresies, 33 on the Virgin, 68
Clement, Bishop, case of, 132
Clément of Versailles on clerical marriage, 594
Cléonique, frère, case of, 620
Clergy worse than laity, 168, 265, 282, 428-31, 530, 552 it corrupts the laity, 340, 353, 388, 504, 518, 532, 560, 629
Clergy, Anglican, position of, 497 French, become antagonistic to Revolution, 589 their present position, 637 Spanish, their rudeness, 302 resistance of, to celibacy, 202, 212, 222, 228, 231 statistics of, in modern times, 588, 593, 630
Clermont, Council of, in 1095, 263 in 1130, 314
Cleves, Duke of, demands clerical marriage, 531
Climène, frère, case of, 637
Clotair I., laws on forcible marriage, 120
Clotair II. on monastic excesses, 115
Clovesho, Council of, in 747, 164
Cnut the Great, his laws, 173
Cochin China, abuse of confessional in, 578
Cochlæus, John, on Confession of Augsburg, 542
Code civile, clerical marriage under, 597
Cœur de Jésus, society of, 613
Coklaw, Thomas, marriage of, 509
Colet, John, his work, 445
Colloquy of Poissy in 1561, 559
Cologne, Council of, in 1146, 208 in 1260, 338 in 1306, 377 in 1307 and 1310, 340 in 1423, 393 in 1527, 514 in 1536, 518 in 1548, 526 in 1549, 1550, 1551, 527 in 1651, 562 in 1662, 558, 562 in 1860, 1863, 627, 633 Manichæism in 1146, 207 condemnation of Lolhard in, 377 clerical marriage forbidden in 1548, 530 proportion of clergy in, 631 Archbishop of, asks for clerical marriage, 539
Coloman, King, enforces celibacy, 249
Columba, St., his labors, 126 his mission to Scotland, 160
Comedians forbidden to perform in nunneries, 527
Commendone, Legate, promises clerical marriage, 531
Comminges, miracle occurring in, 269
Communion, refusal of, in Belgium, 623
Communion in both elements in early church, 44 refused to laity, 45 demanded by the Hussites, 384 by Emperor Ferdinand, 530 by Bavaria, 536 by Charles IX., 641 granted to Germany, 541 withdrawn, 543
Comparative merits of virginity and marriage, 46, 47, 318, 347 settled by Council of Trent, 536, 641
Compiègne, marriage of priests in, 270
Compostella, Council of, in 1056, 303 in 1113, 303, 306 canons of, 302 their reform, 305
Compurgation, immunity gained by, 140
Concordat of 1516 with France, 428 of 1801, 595 clerical marriage under it, 596-98 monastic orders forbidden, 613
Concubinage, punishment of, by Justinian, 87 is worse than marriage in Milan, 210 is more venial than marriage in orthodoxy, 349, 627 is recognized as a necessity, 353, 389 its punishment under the Six Articles, 468 in Anglican Church, 494 its recognition asked for, 527 its punishment at Trent, 538
Concubinage in the modern church, 626-32 (See, also, _Licenses to Sin_.)
Concubinarians ineligible in Saxon Church, 162 proportion of, among the clergy, 519
Concubines of clergy in Spain, 121, 517 priests compelled to keep them, 310, 388 priests fined for not keeping them, 389 they acquire legal position, 339 they do not count in digamy, 349 are liable to death under the Six Articles, 468 are not punished at Trent, 539 secular aid invoked for their removal, 559, 560
Concubines, their position in middle ages, 196
Condom, persecution of celibacy, 593
Confessio Goliæ on celibacy, 290
Confession of Augsburg, 436, 443
Confession of Faith, Calvinistic, 498
Confession not good against accomplice, 291
Confession, auricular, commencement of, 566 dispensation from, 428
Confessional, abuse of, in middle ages, 311, 350, 352 in Germany, 16th century, 432 in nunneries, 523 acknowledged at Trent, 534 in post-Tridentine Church, 566-80 in Italy, 18th century, 586, 588 in modern times, 632-7 testimony of Ernest Renan, 625
Confessionals, regulations concerning, 574, 632
Confessors, guilty, absolution by, 575-7 protection accorded to them, 570, 633
Confiscation of estates of married priests, 87
Congregations, religious, subjected to the State, in 1760, 585
Conjo, convent of S. Maria of, 307
Conrad, King of Lombardy, 220
Conrad, Legate, holds Council of Mainz, 337
Conrad of Mainz on the Hussites, 384
Conrad of Prague, the Hussite, 384
Conrad of Wurtzburg on morals of clergy, 424, 431
Consenza, Council of, in 1579, 553
Conseyo de la Suprema on solicitation, 569, 571
Consilium de emendanda ecclesia, 516, 522, 549 put into the Index, 523
Constance, enforcement of celibacy in, 229 assembly of, in 1094, 243 Council of, in 1415, deposes John XXIII., 343 its failure, 390 Synod of, in 1567, 430, 562 in 1609, 557, 562 Bishop of, defends his clergy, 340
Constance of Burgundy, her influence, 304
Constantine assembles the C. of Nicæa, 52 encourages monachism, 99
Constantine Copronymus, persecution of monks by, 90
Constantine (Pope) threatens Witiza, 121
Constantine of St. Symphorian, 154
Constantinople, Council of, in 381, 84 in 400, 85 in 680, 88
Constitutions, Apostolical (see _Apostolical_).
Constitution of 1791, clerical marriage in, 591
Contarini, Cardinal, on need of reformation, 522 on evils of celibacy, 561
Continence overbalanced by pride, 32
Continence, vows of (see _Chastity_).
Convention, National, supports clerical marriage, 594
Convents (see _Monachism_).
Converts from Catholicism, marriage of, 499, 500
Convocation of 1547 approves of clerical marriage, 472 of 1554 enforces celibacy, 480 of 1557, its legislation, 485
Coptic Church, customs of, 92
Corella, affair of, 572
Corruption of laity by clergy, 265, 350, 518, 548
Cosmo of Prague, case of, 245
Cossa, Balthazar, his crimes, 343
Cotta, Landolfo, seeks archbishopric of Milan, 209 is excommunicated, 212 his life threatened, 213 his death, 215
Councils, revision of their proceedings at Rome, 628 of France, in 1797 and 1800, 595
Countesses, bishop’s wives rank as, 259
Cournand, Abbé, proposes clerical marriage, 590 his marriage, 591
Courtenay of Canterbury on Wickliffe, 379
Courtesans in Rome, necessity for, 550
Court of Augmentations, the, 454
Courts, mixed, for married priests, 257
Cowl, Luther’s wearing of the, 421
Cows as source of episcopal revenue, 297
Cox, Bishop, on Q. Elizabeth’s Injunctions, 492
Cozza, Card., on abuse of confessional, 575
Cranach, Lucas, his portraits of Catharine von Bora, 425
Cranmer on immunity for adultery, 447 intercedes for Thomas Patmore, 462 urges priestly marriage on Henry VIII., 463 opposes the Six Articles, 467 his marriages, 469 encourages priestly marriage, 472, 473 prepares the Forty-two Articles, 475 his children claimed as slaves, 190
Creed of Piers Ploughman, 352 on Carmelites, 353 on sacerdotal powers, 355 on Franciscans, 376
Cremona, reform of priesthood in, 217
Cromwell, bribes tendered to, 454, 460 he favors priestly marriage, 463 he mitigates the Six Articles, 470 his fall, 471
Crossed-Friars, case of Abbot of, 457
Culdees, 299 their disappearance, 300
Cullagium (see _Licenses_).
Culm, Synod of, in 1745, 562
Cumad espuc, or virgin bishop, 295
Cunegunda, St., her asceticism, 176
Cunha, Rod. à, on solicitation, 571
Cunibert of Turin, laxity of, 203
Cuno of Ratisbon, 184
Cuthbert of Canterbury reforms Saxon Church, 164
Cuthbert of London prohibits the Beggars’ Petition, 453
Cuyck, Bish., on corruption of Church, 557
Cynog, Book of, priestly marriage in, 294
Cyprian, St., on vows of continence, 41, 42 on martyrdom and virginity, 46
Cyril, St., his use of monachism, 106
Cyrillus converts Bohemia, 244
Dabralis of Spalatro, degradation of, 188
Daimbert of Sens, his negligence, 263
Dalmatia, priestly marriage in 10th century, 149 in 11th century, 188 relaxation of canons in, 204 enforcement of celibacy in, 250
Dalmatia, Synod of, in 1194, 250
Damasus I. asserts sacerdotal celibacy, 64 on marriage of nuns, 103
Damasus II., his pontificate, 187
Damhouder, Josse, on character of clergy, 557
Damiani, St. Peter, his early career, 186 his character, 193 on troubles of abbots, 154 he urges Clement II. to reform, 185 and Leo IX., 188 his Liber Gomorrhianus, 188 is forced to leave his retreat in 1057, 192 on sacraments of sinful priests, 195 he stigmatizes wives of priests, 196 he endeavors to reform the prelates, 198 he confutes the Tuscan chaplains, 199 on election of Cadalus, 200 on heresy of sacerdotal marriage, 201 his continued efforts, 202 his motives and arguments, 204 his mission to Milan, 213
Damnation for dissidence on celibacy, 640
Dampierre, case of the, 323
Dancing mania, cause assigned to, 351
Danes, effect of their incursions, 139
Danes, Pierre, his repartee at Trent, 413
Darius, Silvester, papal collector, 417
Daughters (see _Children_).
Davanzati, Bishop, favors clerical marriage, 583
Daviaux of Bordeaux prohibits clerical marriage, 597
David I., his reforms, 300
Dax, Council of, in 1585, 560
Daylight, confessions only to be heard during, 574
Deaconesses, ordination of, forbidden, 60 their marriage punished, 96
Deacons allowed to marry, 39 their marriage forbidden, 86
Deans of Friesland, 254
Death penalty for marrying a nun, 100 for marriage under Six Articles, 468 for celibacy in 1793, 593
Debra, Abbé, case of, 635, 637
Decretals, False, on clerical chastity, 136
Decretum Gratiani, compilation of, 317 denies apostolic origin of celibacy, 28
De la Croix, deputy, on unmarried priests, 592
De la Sallé, Abbé, 617
Demeter, worship of, in Athens, 50
Democratic element in the Church, 226
Denis, St., mistaken relics of, 217
Denmark, position of concubines in, 197 enforcement of celibacy in, 253
Dens, Peter, on Italian morality, 631
Denunciation, duty of, by seduced women, 576, 633
Denunciations, Edict of, 569
Desforges on clerical marriage, 582
Desiderius of Monte Casino, 180
Devonshire rebels demand the Six Articles, 469
Devotees permitted to return to the world, 41, 97
Diabolic possession of priests’ wives, 235
Diaconate, women admitted to, 60
Diaz de Luco, on dissolution of marriage, 317 on concubinage, 517 on abuse of confessional, 568
Diego Gelmirez, his reforms, 305
Diet, German, complaints of, in 1510, 411
Diet of Hungary, in 1498, 401
Diether of Mainz, case of, 412
Digami, ordination of, forbidden, 37, 86, 89, 123 their prevalence in British Church, 159 in 10th century, 148 condemned by Council of Spalatro, 149 ineligible in Anglo-Saxon Church, 162 recognition of, in 11th century, 202 not allowed in Milan, 210 condemned in Hungary, 249 condemned by some of the German reformers, 426
Digamy, concubines do not count in, 349 rule of, ridiculed by Luther, 418
Dilapidation of church property, 123, 145, 147
Dimitri of Dalmatia assumes the crown, 250
Dingolfing, Council of, in 772, 135
Dionysius of Corinth on asceticism, 34
Dionysius, King, founds Order of Jesus Christ, 365
Disabilities of married priests, 294
Dispensations, papal, evil influence of, 397 sale of, 321, 322, 345, 398, 516, 517, 522 power of, debated, 407 for unchastity, 131 for marriage, sale of, 522 for married priests, 442 from confession, 428 from vows of chastity, 535, 642 refused by Pius IX., 611 in favor of priests’ children, 505, 516, 549
Divorces of married priests in England, 470, 478
Dogma, celibacy, a matter of, 641
Döllinger and the Old Catholic movement, 604
Dominicans, influence of, 375
admitted to France in 1840, 614
Donati, Girolamo, attempts to murder St. Charles, 551
Donatist heresy condemned, 107 revived by Theodore of Canterbury, 162 by Nicholas II., 194 by Gregory VII., 227 by Innocent II., 246 condemned by Lucius III., 195 and by St. Anselm, 288 revived by the heretics, 368, 374, 379, 383
Döringk on sale of indulgences, 397
Dorothea of Denmark, marriage of, 434
Dortmund, Council of, in 1005, 155
Down, St. Malachi’s episcopate of, 296
Dracontius, case of, 58
Dress, clerical, regulated at Constance, 391
Drogo of Terouane persecutes Watten, 260
Droit de marquette, 354
Dualism in Manichæism, 43 of the Albigenses, 208, 367
Dublin, Councils of, in 1186 and 1217, 298
Du Fail, Noël, on clerical corruption, 561
Dumonteil, case of, 600, 641
Dunbar, Bishop, his immorality, 503
Dunstan, St., takes the vows, 166 his miraculous preservation, 171
Dupanloup, Bishop, on the Syllabus, 642
Du Pin, Louis Ellies, on clerical marriage, 581
Duprat, Cardinal, his efforts at reform, 515
Durand, William, advocates clerical marriage, 405
Durham, Council of, in 1220, 288
Eadmer on results of celibacy, 278
East Anglia, defence of monasteries in, 170
Eastern church, divergence of, 83 its rules as to celibacy, 86 its monachism, 106
Easter, different computations of, 161, 163
Ebionim, or Poor Men, 27 accused of immorality, 34
Ebrard, his history of Watten, 260
Ecclesiastical procedure, immunity caused by, 140
Ecclesiastics, children of (see _Children_). immorality of (see _Morals_).
Ecgberht of York, his Penitential, 163
Eck, Dr., his conference with Melanchthon, 440
Edgar the Pacific, penitence imposed on, 167 his reformatory zeal, 169
Edict of Denunciation, priestly marriage in, 536 solicitation in, 569
Edinburgh, Council of, in 1549, 504 in 1559, 505
Edith, Queen of Edward the Confessor, 175
Edmund I. on immorality of priests, 166
Education, monastic influence on, 358, 616-21 secularization of, in France, 623
Edward and Guthrun on immorality of clerks, 166
Edward the Martyr supports Dunstan, 170
Edward the Confessor, his virginity, 175
Edward, Bishop of Scaren, 279
Edward VI., his accession, 472 his funeral services, 477
Egara, Council of, in 614, 80
Eggard of Sleswick, his fate, 402
Eggs, punishment for eating, in Lent, 511
Egypt, purity required of priests, 50 neglect of celibacy in, 85
Egyptian monachism, commencement of, 97
Ejection of married priests, 594
Elect, Manichæan, 46
Election of popes limited to Roman clergy, 200
Eleuchadio, Abbot of Fiano, 180
Elfhere of Mercia supports the married priests, 170
Elfritha, her intrigues against Edward, 170
Elizabeth, Queen, her hesitation as to priestly marriage, 487 her assent to it, 488 her continued repugnance, 489, 493 her insolence to Mrs. Parker, 491 her Injunctions of Ipswich, 492
Elna, Council of, in 1027, 303
Elphege of Winchester and St. Dunstan, 166
Elvira, Council of, in 305, on digami, 37 celibacy introduced by, 50 on morals of nuns, 99
Emancipation of nuns in 1523, 425
Emancipatore Cattolico, the, 606
Embden, Count of, promotes marriage of nuns, 435
Embrun, Council of, in 1727, 626
Emanuel, King, grants marriage to military orders, 365
Emo of Wittewerum on priestly marriage, 254
Empire, Roman, licentiousness under, 32
Emser, Jerome, his epithalamium on Luther, 426
Encratitians, heresy of, 33, 44
Encyclical, papal, Mirari vos, 601 Qui pluribus, 602 Incredibili afflictamur, 609 Neminem latet, 611
Encyclicals of Leo XIII. on civil marriage, 605
Enforcement of celibacy in 4th century, 67-82 by Gregory I., 123 in 8th century, 131 attributed to Gregory VIII., 224 difficulties attending it, 229 in 12th century, 245 in Bohemia, 246 in Germany, 247 in Hungary, 249 in Poland, 251 in Sweden, 252 in Denmark, 253 in France, 255 in Normandy, 257 in Flanders, 261 by Calixtus II., 268 in England, 273 in Ireland, 296 in Scotland, 300 in Spain, 304 by Innocent III., 327 finally successful, 330 by Henry VIII., 468 by Queen Mary, 480 by Council of Trent, 536 after the Terror, 595
Engelheim, Council of, in 948, 149
England, disorders caused by Anglo-Saxon priests, 147 Saxon period, 159 celibacy at first enforced, 162 introduction of marriage in 9th century, 166 disorders in 10th century, 167 reformation attempted, 168 its failure, 172 church under Cnut the Great, 174 under Edward the Confessor, 176 position of concubines in, 197 heresy in 1166, 207 enforcement of celibacy in, 271 marriage still prevalent in 13th century, 285 hereditary benefices, 272, 281, 282, 285 excitement caused by introduction of celibacy, 289 priestly marriage becomes obsolete, 291 delay in enforcing the canons, 318, 320 marriage of priests’ children, 338 Hali Meidenhad, 347 Begghards in, 378 Wickliffe and Lollardry, 379 demoralization in 15th century, 394, 399 restrictions on papal power in 1517, 417 the reformation in, 444 sqq. Dr. Geddes’s modest apology, 584 case of Shaw v. Starr and Kennedy, 611 Council of Westminster in 1852, 626
English bishops in Sweden, 278 priests in Ireland, 298
Enham, Council of, in 1009, 172
Éon de l’Étoile, 371
Epaone, Council of, in 513, 60 in 517, 80
Ephraem Syrus on Manichæism, 44
Epiphanius on Ebionites, 27, 34 his Manichæan tendencies, 48 on agapetæ, 54 on female ministration, 60 on the Antidicomarianitarians, 69 on non-observance of celibacy, 84 on temporary nature of vows, 97
Episcopissa, 152
Epistolæ Obscurorum Virorum, 413, 414, 415
Erasmus on religious immorality, 356 his relation to the reformation, 414 on indulgences, 417 on priestly marriage, 432 on abuse of confessional, 567
Erchenbald on infanticide, 137
Erfurt, Synod of, in 1074, 231
Eriberto of Milan, his episcopate, 208
Erlembaldo, St., popular chief of Milan, 209 assumes leadership of Paterins, 215 his death, 219
Ermeland, Synod of, in 1497, 402 in 1577, 562
Ernest of Magdeburg, his cynicism, 398
Erskine, Lord, characterized by Knox, 508
Escobar, his casuistry, 578
d’Espeisses, President, on Italian morals, 552
d’Espense, Claude, on virginity of the Virgin, 69 on clerical morality, 559
Essenes, asceticism of, 25
Ethelred the Unready, state of England under, 171
Ethelwold of Winchester, his reforming zeal, 168
Eucharist, modified by Manichæism, 44
Eucherius, St., his vision, 130
Eugenius II. on concubinage, 196
Eugenius III. dissolves marriage of priests, 315 convicts Éon de l’Étoile, 372
Eugenius IV. permits marriage to Knights of Calatrava, 364 orders Council of Bâle dissolved, 395
Eulalius condemns Eustathius, 61
Euphronius of Autun, 79
Euphronius of Tours, 119
Euron, Abbey of, its reform, 264
Eusebius condemns priestly marriage, 51
Eustathius, heresy of, 61
Eutychianism of monastic order, 107
Evangelical Doctor, Wickliffe the, 382
Evenus of St. Melanius, 259
Evreux, Synod of, in 1576, 560
Excalceati, heresy of, 33
Excommunication, effectiveness of, 134
Exemptions conferred on ecclesiastics, 99
Exeter, Bishop of, on children of priests, 286 case of subdeacons of, 320
Expilly on number of French clergy, 593
Expulsion of monks in early times, 101
Exuperius, St., favors Vigilantius, 71
Fabre, Bishop, of Montreal, 613
Fah-Hian, his account of Buddhist monachism, 95
Faith, celibacy as a point of, 515, 536, 603, 640 clerical marriage as a point of, 490
False Decretals on clerical chastity, 136
Faricius of Abingdon, case of, 227
Fasting in penance, 160
Fauchet of Bayeux on clerical marriage, 594
Faustinus on separation of wives, 74
Faustus the Manichæan, 46, 75
Fécamp reformed by Richard the Fearless, 155
Feini, civilization of, 295
Felix of Nantes, case of, 119
Fellows, University, celibacy of, 492
Felony, priestly marriage is, in Six Articles, 468
Ferdinand (Emp.) asks use of cup for Bohemia, 384 demands a general Council in 1522, 424 tolerates Protestantism, 439 on German monasteries, 452 on clerical immorality, 519, 529 his demands suppressed at Council of Trent, 535 asks for clerical marriage, 530-2, 539
Ferdinand of Aragon supports Ximenes, 402
Ferdinand IV. (Naples), his reforms, 583 enacts civil marriage, 607
Fermo, Council of, in 1726, 626
Ferrers, Alex., case of, 502
Ferry of Orleans, his murder, 334
Ferry, Jules, on political influence of monachal education, 618 enforces laws against unauthorized orders, 621 his secularization of education, 623
Feudal system, independence of, 182 tenure by chastity, 153
Fifteenth century, demoralization of, 388
Fischer, Fred., punished for marrying, 424
Fish, Simon, his Beggars’ Petition, 453
Flamen Dialis, second marriage forbidden to, 36
Flanders, enforcement of celibacy in, 259 case of Bossaert d’Avesnes, 323 character of post-Tridentine church, 557 troubles arising from solicitation, 576
Florence, Synod of, in 1057, 191 in 1573, 553 congregation of bishops in 1787, 587
Florentines reject their bishop in 1060, 195
Fluviano, Antonio, Grand Master of St. John, 366
Focaria, introduction of the term, 283
Fontaneto, Council of, in 1058, on priestly marriage, 212
Forcheim, Diet of, in 1077, 236
Formal vows dissolve marriage, 321
Formulas, insincerity of Latin, 642
Forret, Thomas, burnt, 510
Forster, Andreas, his defence of celibacy, 583 on celibacy as a point of faith, 641
Fortescue, Sir John, on priestly marriage, 318
Fox of Winchester unable to restore discipline, 447
France, celibacy first introduced in 384, 64 difficulty in enforcing it, 76 popular desire for it, 77 constant legislation required, 79 morals of, in 4th century, 81 monasticism in 7th century, 115 state of church under the Merovingians, 118 in 8th century, 128 in 9th century, 136 in 10th century, 146, 152, 155 Council of Bourges in 1031, 179 council of Rheims in 1049, 189 heresies in 11th and 12th centuries, 207, 367-75 enforcement of celibacy in, 255 morals of clergy in 12th century, 264 persistence of priestly marriage, 270, 318, 319, 320 efforts of Maurice de Sully, 322 results of celibacy, 331 demoralization in 15th cent., 394, 399 heresy of Jean Laillier, 408 Concordat of 1516, 428 the Sorbonne refuses a conference with Melanchthon, 440 condition of church in 16th cent., 515 clerical marriage asked of Council of Trent, 533, 641 reception of Council of Trent refused, 546 character of post-Tridentine church, 559 abuse of confessional, 570, 576 case of la Cadière, 579 question of marriage reopened in 18th century, 581 corruption in 18th century, 585 the church during the Revolution, 588-95 National Council in 1797, 595 clerical marriage under the Concordat, 596-8 varying policy as to clerical marriage, 599-601 monachism in modern times, 613-6 education by monachism, 617-20 reaction against monachism, 621-3 morality of clergy in, 625 modern councils held in, 626, 633 prosecution of clerical offenders, 635-6 position of clergy in, 637
Francis, St., of Assisi, on obedience, 103 his annual visits to Purgatory, 335 his exaltation of poverty, 376
Francis de Sales, St., on choice of confessor, 578
Francis I. favors League of Schmalkalden, 438 Melanchthon submits Articles to him, 440
Franciscans, their corruption, 350, 352, 353, 376 their influence, 375 reformed by Ximenes, 402 their resistance to Henry VIII., 451 of Bavaria on abuse of confessional, 570
Fraticelli, the, 376
Frederic of Lorraine created pope, 192
Frederic I. on sons of clergy, 326 his visit to Fulda, 404
Frederic II. on Milanese heresies, 211 on children of ecclesiastics, 335
Frederic of Saxony protects married priests, 419 acts as sponsor to child of priest, 422 still considers himself a Catholic, 423
Frères de la Sainte-Croix, 617-8
Frères des Écoles Chrétiennes, 617, 619-20
Frérots, the, 376
Fressanges, Mdlle., case of, 600
Freysingen, Council of, in 1440, 396
Frideswide, St., treatment of her remains, 484
Friesland, enforcement of celibacy in, 254
Fringe, John, case of, 318
Fritzlar, Council of, in 1246, 337
Froude, Mr., on Henry VIII. and the Six Articles, 468
Fructuosus, St., of Braga, his rule, 115
Fuero Juzgo, clerical celibacy in, 121
Fuess, Wolfgang, his marriage, 422
Fulbert of Chartres on military bishops, 152
Fulbert of Paris and Heloise, 269
Fulda, Abbey of, its strictness, 404
Future life, unknown to early Jews, 21 doctrine of, introduced, 24
Gaeidhil, conversion of the, 159
Gall, St., his labors, 126
Galli, castration of, 50
Gallicia, Council of, on discipline, 308 first nunnery in 1129, 307
Gangra, Council of, in 362, 61
Gardiner, Bishop, celebrates mass for Edward VI., 477 sits in judgment on married bishops, 479 scandals concerning him, 486
Gaudin, Abbé, defends clerical marriage, 583 his marriage, 591
Gaul (see _France_).
Gauthier of Ponthoise, 256
Gea Eurysternus, priestesses of, 50
Gebhardt of Constance, election of, 229
Gebhardt of Eichstedt created pope, 184, 191
Gebhardt of Ratisbon, 184
Gebhardt of Salzburg ordered to enforce celibacy, 227
Gebizo enforces celibacy in Dalmatia, 250
Geddes, Dr., on celibacy, 584
Gelasius I. on second marriages, 36 on marriage of nuns, 110
Gelasius of Cyzicus on Paphnutius, 57
Genebaldus of Laon, case of, 119
Genoa, civil marriage valid in, 606
Geoffrey of Chartres fails in his reforms, 265
Geoffrey of Llanthony, case of, 227
Geoffrey of Rouen enforces celibacy, 268
Geoffrey of Tuscany, his chaplains, 199
George of Saxony persecutes married priests, 419
Gerard of Angoulême, case of, 269
Gerard of Cambray on Manichæans, 208, 369
Gerard of Florence created pope, 192
Gerard of Lorsch, his inquiries, 148
Gerard of Munster assists Friesland deans, 254
Gerard of Nimeguen on clerical morality, 429
Gerard of Sabina, his reforms, 339
Gerbert of Aurillac on celibacy, 157
Germain, his charter to Bèze, 265
Germany, virtue of Teutonic tribes, 82 reforms attempted by Carloman, 128 condition of church in 10th century, 148, 154 Council of Mainz, in 1049, 189 heresies in 11th and 12th centuries, 207 enforcement of celibacy by Gregory VII., 230 triumph of schism in 11th century, 241 continuance of priestly marriage, 243 rebellion of Henry V., 244 impossibility of enforcing the canons, 247, 318 hereditary priesthood in 12th century, 326 children of ecclesiastics, 13th century, 336 testamentary provisions for, 337 condition of monachism, 15th century, 340 Marian, or Teutonic Order, 366 Waldensian heresy, 375 the Hussites, 382 Orthodox Brethren, 382 Brethren of the Cross, 382 Cardinal Branda’s reforms, 392 demoralization in 15th century, 393, 400 the Reformation, 410 demoralization in the 16th century, 429, 432 success of the Reformation, 443 morals of the monasteries, 452 reforms attempted by Charles V., 524-8 corruption of the clergy, 529-32, 542-3 demand for clerical marriage, 530-44 clerical marriage refused, 545 post-Tridentine immorality, 548-56 abuse of confessional, 570, 576 demand for clerical marriage in 18th century, 583 in 19th century, 601, 604 civil marriage, 605 monachism in Austria, 615 modern councils held in, 626-7, 633 census of ecclesiastics, 630-1
Geroch of Reichersperg on sacraments of sinful priests, 195 on disregard of canons, 317
Gerson on origin of celibacy, 29 on abuse of confessional, 350 on concubinage as a necessity, 353 on clerical immorality, 389
Gervilius of Mainz, case of, 130
Gervinus of St. Riquier, 176
Ghaerbald of Liége, his canons, 135
Gieus de Robin et de Marion, 351
Gilbert, papal legate in Ireland, 296
Gilbert of Chichester on abuse of confessional, 350
Gilbert de la Porrée, condemnation of, 315
Gildas, description of British clergy, 159
Giles Cantor, his heresy, 385
Giovanni Gualberto, St., 183
Giraldus Cambrensis on origin of celibacy, 28 on the Irish church, 297, 298 his struggle for St. David’s, 283 on married priests, 285 on dispensations, 322 he deprecates celibacy, 325 on residence of relatives, 332
Girard, Father, case of, 579
Girona, Council of, in 517, 80 in 1068, 303 in 1078, 304 in 1197, 373 in 1257, 1274, 310
Glastonbury, Abbey of, 167
Gloucester, Augustinians of, their suppression, 457 See of, created, 460
Gnesen, clerical marriage in, 251 Synod of, in 1577, 555
Gnostics, heresy of, 33, 43
Gobel of Paris, 594, 599
Godric, St., case of, 111
Godsons of bishops, wer-gild for, 162
Godstow, the last of English abbeys, 459
Golias Episcopus, 279
Gomorrhianus Liber, 188
Gonsalvo, Reginaldo, on solicitation, 569
Goodacre, Anne, case of, 512
Goslar, Manichæism at, in 1052, 207
Gotefrido of Tuscany installs Victor II., 191
Gotefrido, Archbishop of Milan, 218
Gotfrid of Wurtzburg, his will, 337
Goths, Spanish, their immorality, 120
Grace, the Pilgrimage of, 455
Gran, Synod of, in 1099, 249 in 1382, 1450, 1480, 401 in 1858, 627
Grandchildren cause ineligibility to episcopate, 87
Grandier, Urban, case of, 581
Gratian on origin of celibacy, 28 on dissolution of priestly marriage, 317 on nature of anathema, 640
Gratian of Rouen on clerical marriage, 594
Great Malvern, prior of, his offer, 454
Greece, influence of, on the Jews, 25
Greek church, its divergence from Rome, 83 its rules as to celibacy, 86 its present customs, 91 tolerated by Rome, 327, 328, 640 abuse of confessional in, 577 of Bohemia, 244
Grégoire of Blois, 598
Gregory I. on marriage, 47 his monastic reforms, 113 his enforcement of celibacy, 122 forged epistle of, 137 his conversion of England, 161 on indissolubility of marriage, 314 legend related by him, 349
Gregory II. forbids marriage of nuns, 127 his advice to Boniface, 128 on sacraments of sinful priests, 195
Gregory VI. purchases the papacy, 184 miracle at his obsequies, 187
Gregory VII. condemns the story of Paphnutius, 56 condemns the epistle of St. Ulric, 150 adopts the heresy condemned at Gangra, 61 accompanies Leo IX. to Rome, 187 his increasing influence, 191 his character and aims, 193 his activity under Nicholas II., 196 he refuses ordination to illegitimates, 205 his mission to Milan, 213 his excommunication, 219 he urges Erlembaldo to persevere, 220 his exertions in Lucca, 222 his election as pope, 223 his enforcement of celibacy, 227 his action in Dalmatia, 250 in France, 256 in Normandy, 258 in Britanny, 259 overlooks England in his reforms, 271 his efforts in Spain, 304 his death, 239 enforcement of celibacy attributed to him, 224 legends concerning him, 226 results of his theocracy, 345 his doctrine revived by the heretics, 368, 374, 379, 383
Gregory VIII. prevents abolition of celibacy, 325
Gregory IX. on Neapolitan clergy, 335
Gregory X. on corrupting influence of prelates, 351 deposes Henry of Liége, 336
Gregory XIII. complains of married priests, 554
Gregory XV. on abuse of confessional, 569
Gregory XVI. represses clerical marriage, 601
Gregory of Nazianzum on priestly marriage, 58
Gregory of Tours on nominations of bishops, 118 on enforcement of celibacy, 120
Gregory of Vercelli, case of, 190
Grey-Friars of Perth, their luxury, 509
Grillandus, case reported by, 431
Grindal, Archbishop, revives the Nicene canon, 494 on position of married clergy, 496
Grosseteste, Robert, his reforms, 292 on papal court, 342
Guala, Cardinal, constitutions of, 332
Gualo of Paris, his uncertainty, 263
Guarino of Modena, oath of chastity required by, 153
Guastalla, Council of, in 1106, 244
Guibert de Nogent, case of, 262
Guiberto of Ravenna on concubinage, 238 his death, 242
Guido, Cardinal, enforces celibacy in Austria, 251 and in Denmark, 253
Guido di Valate appointed to See of Milan, 209 penance imposed on him, 214 is driven from Milan, 216 resigns the archbishopric, 218
Gulielmus Appulus on Nicholas II., 197
Gunzo Grammaticus, 148
Gwentian code on sons of priests, 294
Gyrovagi, 109
Haarlem, Synod of, in 1564, 554
Habit, monastic, salvation insured by, 335
Hali Meidenhad, 286, 347
Halifax, Council of, in 1868, 627, 633
Hamburg, reform undertaken at, 189 Council of, in 1406, 335
Hamerer, Dr., on clerical corruption, 557
Hamilton, Patrick, the Scottish protomartyr, 506
Hamilton, Catherine, her escape, 506
Hamilton, Archbp., his character, 503, 505
Hanno of Cologne, his canonization, 201
Hardouin of Angers on morals of clergy, 394
Heads of colleges, position of their wives, 495
Helena of Adiabene, 22
Heliodorus of Trica, rigor of, 86
Helisacar, Abbot, strict rules of, 404
Heloise reforms Convent of St. Mary, 264 denies her marriage, 269
Helsen on clerical morality, 629 on abuse of confessional, 633
Helvidius, his heresy, 68
Henke, his edition of Calixtus, 583
Henrician heretics, 370
Henry II. (Emp.) on sons of priests, 155 his asceticism, 176 he enforces celibacy, 178
Henry III. (Emp.), his desire for reform, 184 urges Clement II. to reform, 185 creates Bruno of Toul pope, 187 makes Gebhardt of Eichstedt pope, 191 persecutes heretics, 207 appoints Guido di Valate, 209 his death, 192
Henry IV. (Emp.), accession of, 192 offers made to him in 1061, 200 his humiliation at Canosa, 219 he expels Altmann of Passau, 230 he protects married priests, 237 but condemns priestly marriage, 239 his triumph over the church, 241 his final overthrow, 244
Henry V. (Emp.), his successful rebellion, 244 failure of negotiations with him, 267
Henry I. (France), attempt to enforce celibacy under, 179
Henry III. (France), his edicts of pacification, 500
Henry I. (Eng.), his speculation in priestly marriage, 276, 280 he enforces celibacy, 278
Henry V. (Eng.), his persecution of Lollards, 381 he attempts a reform, 394
Henry VIII. favors League of Schmalkalden, 438 joins in suppression of monasteries, 448 assumes supremacy of the church, 450 completes suppression of monasteries, 454 is excommunicated by Paul III., 455 his plans for use of monastic property, 459 he maintains celibacy, 461, 466 negotiates with German reformers, 466 persecutes married priests, 467 is responsible for the Six Articles, 468 objects to council held at Mantua, 520 his death, 472
Henry of Lausanne, the heretic, 370
Henry III. of Liége, 336
Henry of Ravenna adheres to Cadalus, 201
Henry of Salzburg on priestly immorality, 247
Henry of Speyer, his remonstrances, 233
Hepburn, Bishop, his immorality, 502
Hera, celibacy of priestess of, 50
Heracles, Thespian, celibacy of priests of, 50
Héraudin of Châteauroux on clerical marriage, 594
Hercules, Gaditanian, chastity of priests of, 50
Hereditary tendency in Greek church, 91 in Latin church of 10th century, 105 its dangers, 225
Hereditary priesthood allowed by Alex. II., 205
Hereditary transmission, in Poland, 13th century, 252 in Friesland, 254 in Normandy, 12th century, 258 in Britanny, 12th century, 259 in France, 12th century, 265 forbidden by C. of Rheims in 1119, 267 in England, in 11th century, 272 in 12th century, 281, 282 in 13th century, 285 in Ireland, 296, 298 among Culdees, 299 in Spain, in 11th century, 304 its persistence in 12th century, 321, 322, 326 condemned by IVth Lateran Council, 327 persists in Livonia, 336 in Pomerania, in 15th century, 402 in 16th century, 505, 516 in post-Tridentine church, 549
Heresies, the, 367 encouraged by clerical immorality, 334
Heresy of sacerdotal marriage, 201 of concubinarians condemned in 1666, 558 abuse of confessional is, 568 opposition to celibacy is, 515, 603, 640 Lutheran, justified by clerical corruption, 430, 514, 516, 518, 527, 529, 548, 556 sqq.
Heretics, persecution of, in 4th century, 70 on corruption of priesthood, 352 to be condemned, not contented, 536
Herluca, her visions, 236
Hermann, Bishop of Prague, 243
Hermann von Wied of Cologne, 518
Hermann, King, condemns priestly marriage, 239
Heydeck, Baron of, his marriage, 434
High Commission, Court of, 490
Hilarion introduces monachism in Palestine, 97
Hildebert of Le Mans, his efforts at reform, 264
Hildebrand (see _Gregory VII._).
Hildebrandine doctrine as to sinful priests, 224 its treatment at Cambray, 236 is enforced in 12th century, 246 becomes obsolete in 12th century, 248, 275 is adopted by the heretics, 368, 374, 379, 383 is condemned in 15th century, 382 but is enforced by laity, 392
Hildesheim, Synod of, in 1652, 562
Hilles, Richard, on the Six Articles, 471
Himerius of Tarragona on celibacy, 65
Hincmar of Rheims on appellate jurisdiction of Rome, 139 endeavors to enforce the canons, 141
Hiouen-Thsang on Buddhist monachism, 95
Hippolytus of Portus on digami, 37
Hof, immorality of priests of, 428
Holland, reception of C. of Trent in, 553
Homicide, unchastity punished as, 169
Honorius (Emp.) on residence of women, 55 he persecutes Jovinian, 70 his edict of 420, 77, 79
Honorius I. reproves Scottish clergy, 161
Honorius II. enforces celibacy in England, 279 morality of Rome under, 341
Honorius III. endeavors to reform the Scottish church, 301 confirms Order of St. James, 364
Honorius II. (antipope), his election, 200
Honorius of Autun on sacraments of sinful priests, 195
Hooper, Bishop, on effect of the Six Articles, 471 his visitation of Gloucester, 476
Horn, Bishop, on position of married clergy, 496
Horne on married clerks, 291
Hosius, Bishop, on celibacy, 529
Hospitallers, the, 362, 366 suppressed in England, 458
Hostility to the church in 15th century, 394, 395
Hoya, Bishop of Munster, 548
Hubert, Abbot, marriage of, 142
Huesca, Council of, in 598, 80
Hugh of Grenoble, his asceticism, 227
Hugh, Bishop of Lincoln, on clerical morals, 282
Hugh of Lyons (Die) endeavors to enforce celibacy, 256 is reproved by Gregory VII., 258 his efforts in Britanny, 259
Hugh, Archbishop of Rouen, character of, 155
Hugh of Rouen on priestly marriage, 318
he controverts heresy, 371
Hugo of Constance, Zwingli’s demand on, 421
Hugo of Silva Candida at Council of Girona, 303
Hugo, Cardinal, his speech at Lyons, 342
Huguenots, priestly marriage among, 498 toleration of their marriages, 499
Humbert of Silva Candida on Greek errors, 191 on simony, 201
Humphrey, Lawrence, on Richard Smith, 474 on position of married clergy, 496
Hungary, introduction of celibacy in, 248 clerical immorality in 15th cent., 401 discussion of celibacy in 18th cent., 584 effort for clerical marriage in 1866, 603 National Synod of, in 1822, 626
Huss, John, on sacraments of sinful priests, 196 his heresy, 382 causes of its success, 395
Hutten, Ulric von, 415
Hyde, Council of, in 975, 170
Hydroparastitæ, 44
Hypatia, murder of, 106
Ibas of Edessa, case of, 82
Iceland, rights of illegitimates in, 197
Idelette de Bure, 498
Ignatius, St., on abstinence from marriage, 32
Illegitimates ineligible to priesthood in Coptic church, 93 in Latin church, 205
Illegitimacy of children of ecclesiastics, 86 of Anglican clergy, 494, 496
Immorality arising from vows of celibacy, 41 less reprehensible than marriage, 145, 201, 627 favors shown to, 320
Immorality of church (see _Morals_).
Immunity caused by appellate power of Rome, 139 by forms of ecclesiastical procedure, 140 for adultery by priests, 447
Impostures of relics and miracles, 458
Ina, King, Dooms of, 162
Incest caused by celibacy, 138, 278, 331, 555, 628 common in Ireland, 297, 298 price of absolution for, 428 diminished by marriage, 182 clerical marriage held to be, 628
Indelibility of priesthood, 314
India, influence of, on the Jews, 23
Indians, relations of priests with, 563 their hatred of Christianity, 564
Indulgences in Manichæism, 44 marketable value of, 356 sale of, 397 opposition to, 417
Infallibility decreed by Vatican Council, 608
Infanticide resulting from vows of continence, 42, 100, 137 tradition as to, 124
Infessura, his character of Sixtus IV., 344
Influence of celibacy on civilization, 225, 357 political, of modern monachism, 617-18
Injunctions of Queen Elizabeth, 489
Innocent of Rhodez, 118
Innocent I. on priestly marriage of widows, 39 makes no reference to Nicene canon, 55 condemns the Bonosiacs, 68 condemns Vigilantius, 72 enforces celibacy in Calabria, 76 on marriage of nuns, 104
Innocent II. dissolves marriage of priests, 315 his enforcement of celibacy, 246
Innocent III. enforces celibacy 251, 252, 286, 327, 332 reforms convent of S. Agatha, 265 on hereditary benefices, 266, 286, 298 condemns Bossaert d’Avesnes, 323 decisions rendered by him, 324 on digamy, 349 confirms Order of St. James, 364 converts heretics of Bosnia, 369 his hesitation as to the mendicant orders, 375
Innocent IV. enforces celibacy in Sweden, 253 his judgment for d’Avesnes, 323 permits hereditary priesthood, 336 promotes Henry of Liége, 336 his enmity to Grosseteste, 342
Innocent VIII., his character, 345 orders visitation of English monasteries, 399
Inquisition, the, denounces priestly marriage, 556 condemns heresy of concubinarians, 558 abuse of confessional confided to, 568 its decrees on solicitation, 575 its modern procedure in such cases, 633 its tenderness to clerical delinquents, 570 case of Father Mena, 579 its merciful treatment of nuns, 588 its condemnation of Panzini, 602 it defines celibacy a matter of faith, 603, 642 its justification by the church, 618
Insabbatati, 373
_Insermenté_ clergy, 590
Interdict laid on Milan, in 1074, 219
_Interim_, recognition of marriage in the, 441
Investitures, question of, 218
Ipswich, injunctions of, by Q. Elizabeth, 491
Ireland, character of its early church, 76, 159 enforcement of celibacy in, 295 monasticism of its church, 297 corruption introduced by the English, 298 priestly marriage in 16th century, 299 suppression of monasteries in, 461 morality of clergy in, 625 modern Councils of, 626, 633
Isabella of Castile supports Ximenes, 403
Isidor of Pelusium on neglect of celibacy, 86
Isidor, St., of Seville on monastic impostors, 115
Isidorian forgeries, relaxation of canon in, 136
Isis, vow of continence made by, 50
Italy, enforcement of celibacy in 384, 69 resistance to celibacy, 76 morals in 4th century, 81 St. Benedict of Nursia, 111 monachism reformed by Gregory I., 113 state of church in 6th century, 122 in 8th century, 127 Charlemagne and the Roman clergy, 135 state of church in 10th century, 144 Ratherius of Verona, 146, 150 Atto of Vercelli, 147, 152 Guarino of Modena and Alberic of Marsico, 153 Silvester II., 157 state of church in 11th century, 180 San Giovanni Gualberto, 183 Henry III. and the papacy, 184 St. Peter Damiani, 185 vain attempts at reform, 190 Damiani and Hildebrand, 192 Council of Melfi, in 1059, 197 schism of the Lombard clergy, 200 the antipope Cadalus, 201 failure of the reform, 204 the reform in Milan, 207-221 troubles in various cities, 222 Synod of Melfi, 242 Calabria, priestly marriage in 12th century, 320 Greek church in South, 328 children of ecclesiastics, 335 privileges accorded to concubines, 339 morality of papal court, 341 Savonarola, 386, 398 demoralization in 15th cent., 393, 399 in 16th century, 430, 549-52 clerical marriage proposed in 18th century, 583 corruption in 18th century, 586-8 case of Panzini, 602 civil marriage, 605 followed by clerical marriage, 606 suppression of monastic orders, 609 Barnabite college at Monza, scandal of, 621 modern councils held in, 626-7 number of clergy in, 630 morality of clergy, 631
Ivo of Chartres on the canons, 263 he reproves immorality, 264
Izeshne sacrifice, 44
Jacobines, number of, 92
Jainas, the, 35
Jalikiah, its church independent of Rome, 302
James of Jerusalem, a Nazirite, 25 the brother of Jesus, 68
James IV. (Scotland) protects Lollards, 501
James V. (Scotland), his parliament of 1542, 503
James VI. (Scotland), his baptism, 505
Jameson, Margaret, her marriage, 509
Jane of Flanders, 323
Janizaries, celibacy required of them, 19
Jarnsida, rights of illegitimates in, 197
Jean de Rély on morals of church, 399
Jephthah, daughter of, 21
Jerome, St., on the origin of celibacy, 28 on Buddha, 34 on Manichæism, 46 on marriage, 47 on agapetæ, 54 on heresy of Bonosus, 68 of Jovinian, 70 of Vigilantius, 72 on clerical morality, 78 on observance of celibacy, 85 on early monachism, 97 on immorality of nuns, 100 on difficulty of virginity, 624
Jerome of Prague on Huss, 382
Jerusalem, effect of its capture, 326
Jesuits, they protect their erring members, 579 their influence on morality, 578 their expulsion from New Grenada, 609 they endeavor to enter France, 614 their recent growth, 615 their suppression in France in 1880, 621
Jesus Christ, Order of, 365
Jews, their relation to asceticism, 21-6 their polygamy, 38
Jodocus of Lubec as deputy of papal legates, 442
John IV. on Anglo-Saxon monachism, 163
John XII., his vices, 144
John XIII. condemns priestly marriage, 150 ejects canons of Winchester, 168
John XXII. and the Fraticelli, 377 his taxes of the penitentiary, 428
John XXIII., his crimes and deposition, 343 convokes Council of Constance, 390 his sale of dispensations, 398
John, King (Eng.), speculates on priests’ wives, 283
John of Alexandria, his strictness, 123
John the Baptist, Essenism of, 25
John of Crema, his misadventure, 279 his Scottish reforms, 300
John the Evangelist condemns the Nicolites, 34
John of Frankfort, independence of, 397
John of Jerusalem, rule of, 101
John of Leyden permits polygamy, 438
John of Liége, his murder, 336
John of Lisieux fails in his reforms, 265
John Merlaw of Fulda relaxes the rules, 404
John of Nicklaushausen, his heresy, 405
John of Oberwesel, 407
John of Pirna, 378
John of Rouen enforces celibacy, 256
John of Salisbury reforms his canons, 265
John of Saxony, his treatment of monasteries, 435
John of Schweidnitz, his death, 378
John of Utrecht reforms the nunneries, 340
Jonas, Justus, on Luther’s marriage, 425
Joseph II. (Emp.), his reforms, 583
Jovian on marriage of nuns, 100
Jovinian on Manichæism, 46 his resistance to celibacy, 69
Judah and Tamar, 21
Judhaël of Dol, his marriage, 259
Julian (Emp.) on Syrian asceticism, 50
Julian, Cardinal, legate to Ireland, 298
Julius II. approves of Savonarola, 386
Julius III. defends Savonarola, 386 grants powers to Cardinal Pole, 478 his bull of indulgence to England, 482 he reconvokes the Council of Trent, 521 on treatment of Lutherans at Trent, 521
Julius of Wurzburg argues against clerical marriage, 535
Junia the apostle, 60
Junqua, Abbé, case of, 601
Jurisdiction, appellate, effects of, 140 temporarily surrendered, 334
Jus primæ noctis 354
Jus spolii enforced by Robert the Frisian, 260
Justification by works, doctrine of, 115 in Calvinism, 498 in Scotland, 506
Justin Martyr on morals of Christians, 33 denounces second marriages, 36 approves of mutilation, 40
Justinian, legislation of, 86 regulates monachism, 108
Katherine of Arragon divorced, 450
Katz, his work on celibacy, 584
Keledeus, or Culdee, 299
Killore, John, burnt, 510
King’s College enriched by Henry VIII., 448
Kirkaldy of Grange, 503
Kirkham, Walter, of Durham, prohibits marriage, 290
Knade, James, first married priest of Reformation, 419
Knox, John, his denunciation of Catholics, 506 he justifies Beatoun’s murder, 507 his Book of Discipline, 508 his disputation with Wynrame and Arbuckle, 510 his confession of faith, 512
Koch of Wiesbaden, case of, 601
Kokkius, Doctor, on clerical morals, 396
Kolderup-Rosenvinge, his text of Cnut’s laws, 174
Kopp, Leonhard, emancipates nuns, 425
Krishna, similarity of, to Christ, 92
Kyle, Lollards of, 501
Lacordaire obtains admission of Dominicans, 614
Lactantius condemns asceticism, 48 reprobates monachism, 98
Ladak, number of monks in, 95
Ladislas II. introduces celibacy in Hungary, 248
Lætitia, Madame, patroness of charitable orders, 613
Lagréze on droit de marquette, 355
Laillier, Jean, his heresies, 408
Laity corrupted by the clergy, 265, 346, 350, 429, 430, 518, 533, 586, 629 in favor of priestly marriage, 252, 423 in favor of celibacy, 235, 465, 496 require pastors to keep concubines, 310, 353, 388 their assistance invoked by the church, 194, 232, 256, 257, 261, 559, 560 their asceticism in 11th century, 241
Lambert of Artois enforces celibacy, 262
Lambertini, Countess, case of, 631
Lanciski, Synod of, in 1197, 251
Lands of Church in German Reformation, 434, 437, 439 in England, 454, 482 in Scotland, 508 in France, 589 in Sardinia, 609 in Italy, 610
Lanfranc, moderation of his reforms, 272, 273
Langdon, case of Abbot of, 451
Langdon, Rev. W. C., on clerical morality, 632
Langlande on foreign prelates, 290 on venality of officials, 293 on the church, 444
Languedoc, Manichæism in, 208
Lanssac, his instructions at Trent, 517 on clerical marriage at Trent, 533
Lanzo of Milan, 209
Laodicea, Council of, in 352, 36, 60
Laon, case of subdeacon of, 324
La Réole, monks of, kill St. Abbo, 153
Lasteyrie on clerical corruption, 585
Lateran, first Council of, in 1123, 313 second Council of, in 1139, 315 fourth Council of, in 1215, 327, 567 fifth Council of, in 1516, 413, 428
Latimer, Bishop, concerned in bribing Cromwell, 454 on unworthy promotions, 456 his imprisonment, 469
Latin clerks in Greek church, 329
Laurentius Gallus, 349
Lausanne, clergy of, drive out their bishop, 341 popular complaints in 1533, 429 case of clerical marriage in, 601
Lawney and the Duke of Norfolk, 469
Lay communion in both elements, 44 wine withdrawn from, 45 demanded by the Hussites, 384 demands for it in 16th century, 530, 536, 641 conceded to and withdrawn from Germany, 541, 543
Lazarists, 613-4
Lead, value of, in English monasteries, 459
League of Schmalkalden founded, 438
Le Bas, number of ecclesiastics of France, 593
Lebret, Président, absolves Girard, 580
Legacies to church restricted, 63
Legitimation of priests’ children, in 1552, 476 under Elizabeth, 488 letters of, in Scotland, 506
Leibnitz, his negotiations with Bossuet, 582
Leigh, Thomas, on morals of laity, 464
Leighton, Dr., his report of monasteries, 451
Leith, Articles of, 511
Le Mans, bishop of, the son of a priest, 205 Synod of, in 1248, 350
Leo I. on priestly marriage of widows, 39 on communion in one element, 44 he enforces celibacy, 76 on virginity of nuns, 104 on disregard of vows, 105 on concubinage, 196
Leo III. dispenses St. Swithin, 165
Leo. VIII. permits ordination of priests’ sons, 148 approves statutes of St. Martin of Tours, 404
Leo IX., his entry in Rome, 187 he commences reform, 188 endeavors to reform the Greek church, 191 on priestly marriage in Lucca, 222 his death and canonization, 190
Leo X., his character, 413 he honors Savonarola, 386 is replied to by Diet of Augsburg, 416 he excommunicates Luther, 418 his efforts at reform, 428 his thanks to Henry VIII., 463
Leo XIII. denounces civil marriage, 605
Leo and Anthemius, their laws on monachism, 108
Leo the Isaurian persecutes monks, 90
Leo Marsicanus on Alberic, 153
Leo the Philosopher, legislation of, 87 forbids marriage in orders, 90 on monachism, 109
Leon, Council of, in 1114, 307
Leonistæ, the, 67
Leopold of Tuscany endeavors to reform nunneries, 573, 586
Leptines, Synod of, in 743, 131
Lerida, Council of, in 523, 80
Leslie, Norman, murders Cardinal Beatoun, 503
Levirate marriage among the Jews, 21
Levites, hereditary functions of, 22
Levitical rule of virgin marriage, 38 maintained in Milan, 210
Leyden, John of, 438
Lhassa, number of monks in, 95
Liber Gomorrhianus, 188
Libya, married bishops in, 89
Licentiousness better than marriage, 145, 201, 628
Licenses to sin, first allusion to, in 1080, 257 sale of, in Denmark, 253 condemned by Lateran Council, 327 continued in England, 278, 280, 284, 289, 293 in France, 332 in Germany, 337 in Naples, 339 condemned by Council of Bâle, 396 continued throughout 15th century, 312, 389, 401 in 16th century, 428, 432, 433, 462, 526, 528, 559
Liége, Manichæism, in 1025, 207 priestly marriage in 12th century, 247 heretics in, 371 Bishop of, on clerical corruption, 530 Council of, in 1131, 246, 314 in 1548, 526, 530
Lignana, Girolamo, his attempt to murder St. Charles, 551
Lillebonne, Council of, in 1080, 257
Lima, Councils of, in 1552-1601, 563-5
Limitation on vows in France, 613
Lincoln, case of subdeacon of, 321
Lindet of Evreux, his marriage, 591
Link, Wences., his marriage, 422
Lippomani condemns Orzechowski, 541
Lisieux, case of archdeacon of, 349 Council of, in 1055, 256
Litchfield, Saxon Bishop of, 272 visitation of diocese of, 452
Livonia, hereditary priesthood in, 336
Livres de Jostice et de Plet, 321
Llorente on abuse of confessional, 569, 572-3
Lodi, turbulence of married priests at, 202
Loi Falloux of 1850, 614, 617
Lolhard, Walter, 377
Lollards, the, 381 of Kyle, 501
Lombardo-Venitia, number of clergy in, 630
Lombardy independent of Rome, 219 submits to Rome, 221
Loménie of Sens, his marriage, 591
London, Dr., his career, 457 on false relics, 458 on permission of marriage of nuns, 466 on ejected monks, 469
London, married priests deprived in 1554, 478 enumeration of married priests in, 489 Council of, in 1075, 272 in 1102, 273 in 1108, 277 in 1126, 279 in 1129, 280 in 1200, 288 in 1237, 288 in 1268, 291
Lords, House of, delays priestly marriage, 472
Loretto, Episcopal Convention of, in 1850, 626
Lorraine, Cardinal of, his instructions at Trent, 533 endeavors to enforce chastity, 559
Lothair (Emp.) aids to enforce celibacy, 246 visits Fulda, 404
Louis-le-Débonnaire on monastic impostors, 115 his reforms, 136 prohibits phlebotomy to monks, 138
Louis-le-Gros, his charter to St. Cornelius, 270
Louis IX. arbitrates for the d’Avesnes, 323
Louis XII. and relics of St. Denis, 217
Louis XV. reforms monastic orders, 585 his arrests of brothel-haunting priests, 586
Louis-Philippe adverse to monachism, 614
Louvain, University of, urges reform, 529 Synod of, in 1556, 541 in 1574, 561
Loyola, his reformation of Spain, 517
Luanus, monasteries founded by, 160
Lucca, priestly marriage in, 222
Lucius II. on hereditary priesthood, 281
Lucius III. on sacraments of sinful priests, 195 on hereditary benefices, 322 confirms the Order of the Temple, 363 condemns the Waldenses, 373
Lucretia Borgia, 345
Ludegna, Juan, his disputation on priestly marriage, 535
Luna, Doña Agueda de, 572
Lunden, Archbishop of, on priestly marriage, 252
Lupus of Troyes on celibacy, 79
Lupus, Christian, on Paphnutius, 57 on Tridentine canons, 640
Luther, his place in the Reformation, 413 his ninety-five propositions, 417 his gradual progress, 418 he hesitates as to priestly marriage, 420 he approves of priestly marriage, 422 his marriage, 425 his opinions on marriage, 426 he opposes the Anabaptists, 438 he fraternizes with Orthodox Brethren, 385 he reprints Caraffa’s “Concilium,” 523 Sir Thomas More’s assault on him, 440
Lutheranism caused by clerical immorality, 514, 516, 518, 527, 529 its spread in Bohemia, 384
Lutherans, the, adopt the Waldenses, 375 they object to Council held at Mantua, 520 their treatment at Trent, 521 they decline further participation, 522
Luxury, uses of, 358
Lyons, Poor Men of, 373
Lyons, effect of papal court on, 342 suppression of unauthorized orders in, 622 Council of, in 583, 80 in 1274, 328, 336, 351 in 1528, 515 in 1850, 626
Lyons, Huguenot Synod of, in 1563, 38, 499
Macaulay, Lord, on Anglican clergy, 497
Macedonia, celibacy enforced in, 86
Macliaus of Britanny, case of, 119
Macon, Council of, in 581, 80, 119
Mæsse-þegnes, wer-geld of, 173
Magdeburg Centuriators, their mistake, 162 Council of, in 1403, 353 troubles of, in 1431, 395
Mahavira, legend of, 35
Mahue of S. Sulpice, case of, 592
Maiden Bradley, prior of, his morals, 458
Maillard, Olivier, his sermon, 399
Mainardo, Card., his mission to Milan, 217
Mainerio Boccardo, will of, 221
Mainz, enforcement of celibacy in, 230 revolt against Rodolf of Swabia, 236 Diet of, in 1085, 239 annates of, 412 Archbishop of, asks for clerical marriage, 539 Council of, in 888, 138 in 1049, 189 in 1075, 231 in 1225, 337 in 1261, 338, 376 in 1527, 423 in 1549, 528
Majorian, laws of, respecting nuns, 105
Malachi, St., his reforms, 296 his death, 297
Malatesta, Carlo, interferes with concubinage, 339
Mallet, Abbé, case of, 635
Malone, Malachi, on dispensations, 541
Malta, Knights of, 362, 366 suppressed in England, 458
Manasses of Rheims, his violent measures, 261
Mancio of Chalons, his indecision, 142
Manes, career of, 43
Manfredonia, Council of, in 1567, 553
Manichæism, influence of, 43 indulgences and Eucharist in, 44 revival of, in 11th century, 207 prevalent in Milan, 211 opposed by St. Bernard, 331 of Albigenses, 367
Manigold of Veringen, case of, 235
Mansfeld, married priest of, 419
Mantua, Council of, in 1053, 190 in 1067, 202 Council of Trent to be held at, 519
Mapes, Walter, his satirical verses, 289
Mar Aba prohibits priestly marriage, 92
Marcellin, Abbé, on droit de marquette, 354
Marcian (Emp.) restricts monachism, 107
Marcion, heresy of, 33
Marcus, heresy of, 33
Margaret of Flanders, case of, 323
Margaret of Parma delays reception of Council of Trent, 547
Mariana on married clergy of Spain, 303
Marian Order, 366
Marien, frère, case of, 637
Marillac, Bishop Charles de, on clerical discipline, 559
Marino, a married priest, 180
Marino of Ostia condemns priestly marriage, 149
Marisco, Adam de, 292
Marozia, her power, 144
Marquardo dei Susani on celibacy, 547
Marquette, droit de, 354
Marriage exalted by Christ, 26 in Apostolic Constitutions and Canons, 48 abstinence from, among early Christians, 32 heresies condemning, 31 orthodox condemnation of, 45 depreciation of, by Chrysostom, 86 comparative merit of, 46, 47, 318, 347 abhorrence of, by Manichæans, 43 by Albigenses, 208, 367 orthodox embarrassment concerning, 369 disregard of, in 11th century, 182 in Ireland, 295, 297, 298 Wickliffe’s view of, 381 permitted to those under vows, 100 not dissolved by monastic vows, 114 indissoluble in early church, 314 dissolved by orders and vows in 12th century, 313 effect of vows upon, 321 worse than licentiousness, 145, 201, 628 clerical, is incest, 628 sacrament of, inferior to ordination, 642 of Martin Luther, 425 of Albert of Brandenburg, 434 of converts to Calvinism, 499 in orders forbidden, 39, 77 persisted in 80 forbidden in the East, 86 custom of Greek church, 89, 90 permitted among Nestorians, 92 anathematized at Trent, 536 in Spanish military orders, 363, 364
Marriage of abbots, Hungary, 15th century, 401
Marriage of bishops, prohibited in orders, 39 in 4th century, 58 in Greek church, 87, 91 practised in Africa, 89 in Frankish Gaul, 119 in Gothic Spain, 121 in 8th century, 132 in 10th century, 154, 155 in 11th century, 181, 189, 197, 198 separated from their wives in Hungary, 249 in Ireland, 295 treatment of, under Mary, 479
Marriage of deaconesses punished, 96
Marriage of monks permitted in 4th century, 58 forbidden by Justinian, 108 and by Gregory I., 113 St. Bernard on, 316 common in 9th century, 139 in 12th century, 324, 326 in 14th century, 340 in 15th century, 401, 403 in Reformation, 420 dispensations refused them, 442
Marriage of nuns a capital crime, 100 is binding, 103, 104, 105 common in 5th century, 110 in 7th century, 115 in Merovingian France, 120 in Gothic Spain, 121 in Italy, in 8th century, 127 forbidden in 8th century, 132, 135, 137 common in 9th century, 139 in 10th century, 163, 166 in 14th century, 340 in 15th century, 403 in Reformation, 425, 435 under Henry VIII., 466 in France in 1581, 500 in French Revolution, 593
Marriage of priests in early church, 27-30, 48 restricted to single marriage, 37 and with virgins, 38 forbidden in orders, 39 forbidden in Manichæism, 45 and by Council of Elvira, 50 but not by Council of Nicæa, 54 first prohibition, in 385, 64 prohibition gradually enforced in Western church, 66-82 custom of Eastern church, 89 common in Gothic Spain, 121 common in Italy in 6th and 8th centuries, 122, 127 in Merovingian France, 119-20 prohibited in 8th century, 133-5 reappears in 9th century, 142 common in 10th century, 148, 150, 152, 155, 158 in British church, 159 in Saxon England, 167, 169, 172 in Wales, 171 universal in 11th century, 181 in southern Italy, 197 in Tuscany, 199 creates a political party in 1061, 200 becomes a heresy, 201 struggle over, in Lombardy, 210-21 persecution of, 234 penalties inflicted on, 242 in Bohemia, 245 in Germany, 247 in Hungary, 248-9 in Dalmatia, 250 in Poland, 251 in Sweden, 252 in Denmark, 253 in Friesland, 254 in France, 255, 270 in Normandy, 256 in Britanny, 259 in Flanders, 260 in England, 272-91 in Wales, 294 in Ireland, in 16th century, 299 in Scotland, 299 in Spain, 303 delay in abrogating it, 305 forbidden by Alfonso the Wise, 308 irregular, continued, 311 St. Bernard on, 316 Gratian on, 317 advocated by Alexander III., 325 condemned by Wickliffe, 379 allowed by Lollards, 381 condemned by Hussites, 384 allowed by Brethren of the Cross, 385 and by Orthodox Brethren, 385 advocated in 15th century, 405 commencement of, in Reformation, 419 demanded by Zwingli, 421 accepted by Luther, 422 favored by the people, 423 persecuted by the church, 423 recognized by the Interim, 441 dispensations granted by Paul III., 442 recognized by Transaction of Passau, 443 advocated in England in 1530, 461 commencement of, in England, 462-5 refused by Henry VIII., 461-4 a capital offence under the Six Articles, 468 permitted under Edward VI., 472 popular repugnance for, 475, 476 suppressed under Mary, 478 admitted by Elizabeth, 488 a matter of Anglican faith, 475, 490 effects of its uncertainty on Anglican clergy, 497 a matter of course in Calvinism, 498, 510 dispensations for, sale of, 522 demanded of Council of Trent, 529-33 prevalence of, 531-2 disastrous consequences to church, 535 prejudged at Trent, 534-6 asked for by German princes and prelates, 539-43 condemned as heresy at Trent, 536, 640-2 papal dispensations for, 541 refused by Pius IV., 545 in post-Tridentine church, 554 denounced by Inquisition, 556 demand for, in 18th century, 582-4 in French Revolution, 590-4 under the Concordat, 596-8 varying policy in France, 599-601 attempted revival in modern times, 601, 606 accepted by Old Catholics, 604 in the United States, 607
Marriage of subdeacon valid, 324
Marriage, civil, 605-7
Marriage with Christ by taking the veil, 104
Marriages, second, commanded by St. Paul, 96 objected to, 33 regarded as adulterous, 36 forbidden to priesthood, 37 St. Augustin on, 74 legislation against, 86, 89 in 11th century, 202, 210
Married men, admission of, to orders, 76, 79
Married nuns, divorce of, 480
Married priests, their audacious demands in 8th century, 132 their divorce, 470 numbers ejected under Queen Mary, 480 penance inflicted on, 481 not permitted to leave the church, 424, 484 enumeration of, in England, 489
Marsico, priests of, defend their concubines, 339
Marsiglio of Padua on confessional, 350
“Marthas” of Franciscans, 353
Martin I., his advice to Amandus, 126
Martin V., his election, 391 his favors to John XXIII., 344 condemns the Begghards, 377 his attempts at reform, 392
Martin, St., on marriage, 47
Martin, case of, in 1817-21, 599
Martin of Battle Abbey, 282
Martin of Camin on clerical morals, 402 tries to reform his clergy, 496
Martin, St., of Leon, his dialectics, 371
Martin of Marseilles, marriage of, 592
Martin, Dr. T., at trial of Cranmer, 190 his treatise on celibacy, 480
Martyrdom, its comparison with virginity, 46 of English monks, 450
Marullus on Innocent VIII., 345
Mary, St., of Egypt, 98
Mary of Guise, her policy, 507
Mary, Queen, her obsequies of Edward VI., 477 her death, 486
Mass, disputation on, Scotland, in 1560, 507
Masses for the dead, copied from Mazdeism, 44 maintained by Henry VIII., 454
Masses of married priests to be rejected, 194, 227, 246, 256, 274
Massieu of Beauvais, his marriage, 591
Massipia, legalized concubines, 197
Materialism of Mosaic Law, 21
Maternity, dissuasions from, 347
Mathison, John, and the Anabaptists, 438
Matilda, Countess, and married priests of Lucca, 222
Matrimony, Tridentine canons on, 534-6, 640-1
Matthew Paris on Milanese heresies, 211
Matthew of Salzburg, his attempted reforms, 518
Matthias Corvinus on priestly morals, 401
Maud of Ramsbury, 281
Mauger of Rouen, his character, 156
Mauléon, Mdlle. Desvieux de, 582
Maultrot, his answer to Gaudin, 584
Maurice of Saxony, 441, 443
Maurice de Sully, powers granted to, 322
Maurilio, St., of Rouen, 156
Mauritanian nuns, case of, 104
Maximilian II. asks for clerical marriage, 543 his requests refused, 545
Maya, mother of Buddha, 35
Mayer, Dr., on clerical corruption, 557
Mayer’s dissertation on Cath. von Bora, 425
Mazdeism, character of, 22 its Messiah, 35 its Izeshne sacrifice, 44
Meat, abstinence from, not recommended, 48 use of, forbidden by Manes, 43 and by Albigenses, 208, 367
Meaux, Bishop of, his propositions condemned, 382
Mechlin, regulation of confessionals, 574 discussion as to solicitation in, 576 clerical morals in, 628 Synods of, in 1570 and 1607, 561
Medicine, incompatibility of, with priesthood, 227
Meinhard of Trèves, misfortunes of, 248
Melanchthon on Luther’s marriage, 425 prepares the Confession of Augsburg, 436 seeks conference with Sorbonne, 440 argues with Henry VIII., 466 remonstrates with him, 470
Melchoir of Wurzburg on condition of clergy, 528
Melfi, Council of, in 1059, 197 in 1089, 242 in 1284, 329, 339 in 1597, 553
Mélisse, frère, case of, 637
Melun, Assembly of, in 1579, 556
Men of Intelligence, 385
Mena, Father, case of, 579
Menco, Abbot, on priestly marriage, 254
Mendelsham, Vicar of, his marriage, 465
Mendicant Orders, the, 375
Mendicancy of Begghards condemned, 377
Mendicancy disapproved by Wickliffe, 379 forbidden in Reformation, 420
Mendieta on Spanish colonial church, 564
Merit, comparative, of virginity and marriage, 46, 47, 318, 347, 536, 641
Merseburg, priestly marriage demanded by people of, 441
Messiah, the, of Mazdeism, 35
Methodius converts Bohemia, 244
Metz, sons of priests ordained in, 154 Council of, in 895, 138 in 1604 and 1610, 562
Mexico, Councils of, in 1555 and 1585, 563, 565-6 corruption of its church, 563-6
Michelet on abuse of confessional, 573
Milan, struggle over celibacy in, 207-221 prevalence of Manichæism in, 211 its independence of Rome, 210 its submission to Rome, 213, 221 Synod of, in 1098, 221 in 1565 and 1582, 553 reforms of St. Charles Borromeo, 550-2 Episcopal Convocation, in 1849, 626
Military bishops in 10th and 11th centuries, 153, 180
Military Orders, the, 362
Military service enforced on monks, 99
Mill, Walter, his trial, 510
Milo of Rheims, case of, 129
Minden, Dean of, miracle occurring to, 266
Mingrat, Abbé, case of, 635
Minims, corruption of, 562
Minimum age for vows, 585, 587, 611 for ordination, 624 for resident women, 626
Ministers, Calvinist, strictness of rules, 499
Minors, irrevocable engagements by, 611
Minucius, Felix, on morals of Christians, 33 on second marriages, 36
Minuto, Cardinal, his mission to Milan, 217
Mirabeau advocates clerical marriage, 590
Miracles in support of celibacy, 170, 236, 334 by married priests, 180 to enforce morality, 266 false, 458
Misnia, the Brethren of the Cross, 385 priestly marriage in, 419
Missionary work of monachism, 113
Missions, abuse of confessional in, 578
Missions Étrangères, the, 614
Mithraic worship in Rome, 43
Mixed tribunal for married priests, 257
Modena, trouble with married priests in, 222
Molanus, his negotiation with Bossuet, 582
Monachism, 94 its Buddhist prototype, 95 commencement of, 97 originally temporary, 101 rules of Greek church, 107 difficulties of the West, 109 Western, practical character of, 112 rendered irrevocable by Gregory I., 113 benefits of, 113
Monachism, disorders of, under Carlovingians, 137, 139 reforms in 10th century, 152 in Irish church, 160, 295 Anglo-Saxon, 163, 173, 176 condition of, in France, 264 in early Scottish church, 299 degrading regulations of, 332 influence of, 357 demoralization in 15th century, 340, 392, 393, 399, 403 ridiculed by Erasmus, 415 opposition to, in Reformation, 421 position of, in Reformation, 437, 439 overthrown by Wolsey, 447 effort to enforce discipline, in 1549, 526 its description by Cassander, 543 its abolition recommended, 523, 573 its influence on solicitation, 573 corruption of post-Tridentine, 562 in Spanish Colonies, 565 corruption in 18th century, 585, 586 its abolition recommended, 587 subjected to the State, in 1760, 585 its modern vicissitudes, 608-21
Monasteries, residence in, enforced in the East, 107 not necessary in the West, 115 subjected to the bishops, 134 women excluded from, 403 treatment of, in Reformation, 435 English, their immorality, 451 suppression of, by Wolsey, 448 and by Henry VIII., 454 means used for, 457 financial results of, 460 suppression of, in Austria, 584 in France, 589 in Spain, 608 in Italy, 609 in South America, 609
Monastic habit, salvation ensured by, 335
Monks, persecuted by the Iconoclasts, 90 number of, in Coptic church, 93 subjected to military service, 99 wandering, described by Augustin, 102 and by St. Benedict, 110 and by Smaragdus, 115 political influence of, 106 confined to their convents, 107 their wives must become nuns, 114 punishment of unchastity, 103, 131 custom of letting blood, 138 secular life of, in 10th century, 152 as priests in Anglo-Saxon England, 174 married priests replaced with, 275 residence of, with nuns, in Spain, 305 ordered to sleep singly, 332 ridiculed by Von Hutten, 416 fate of English, 460 ejected, held to chastity, in England, 469 unfit to be confessors, 432, 569, 572, 577, 587 marriage of (see _Marriage_).
Monluc of Valence, his marriage, 499 his description of French clergy, 515
Montanists denounce second marriages, 36
Montariol, Abbey of, and droit de marquette, 354
Monte Casino, foundation of, 111 Carloman becomes a monk there, 133 Abbey of, in 10th century, 153 preservation of, in 1866, 609
Monza, clerical marriage in 1152, 221 Barnabite college at, case of, 621
Morales, Ambrosio, case of, 40
Morality, reformed by early Christians, 32 of Puritanism, 357 of Scottish Reformers, 509 artificial standard of, 269, 347, 349, 627
Morals, clerical, described by Cyprian, 41 by Tertullian, 42 reforms at Council of Nicæa, 54 how affected by introduction of celibacy, 78 as described by Salvianus, 81 by Council of Elvira, 99 by St. Jerome, 100 of monks, described by St. Augustin, 102 by St. Benedict, 110 by St. Isidor of Seville, 115 by Smaragdus, 115 of bishops in Merovingian France, 119 of clergy in Gothic Spain, 121 in Italy, in 8th century, 127 in France, in 8th century, 128 in 9th century, 136 in Italy, in 10th century, 145, 147, 153 in England, in 10th century, 167 in 11th century, 172 in monasteries, in 11th century, 188 of bishops, in 11th century, 198 of married clergy, in 11th century, 202 in Milan, 210 in Germany, in 12th century, 247 in France, in 12th century, 264 worse than laity, 265, 346, 350, 429, 430, 518, 533, 586, 629 in England, in 12th century, 281 in 13th century, 293 in Ireland, in 14th century, 299 in Scotland, in 13th century, 301 in Spain, in 14th century, 311 in church of 12th century, 321, 326 of 13th century, 331 in monasteries in 14th century, 340 in papal court, 341 in mediæval church, 350 in military orders, 364 in Bohemian church, 383 in 15th century, 388 in 16th century, 427, 515-33 in English church of 16th century, 447 in English monasteries, 451 of clergy of Bangor, 463 in Scottish church, 501 sqq. in German church described by Cassander and Wicelius, 542-3 after Council of Trent, 548 in Rome, in 16th century, 549 in post-Tridentine church of Italy, 550-3 in Bavaria and Bohemia, 554, 556 in the Low Countries, 557 in France, 559 in confessional, 566-77 affected by casuistry, 578 in 18th century, 585-8
Morals of monachal educators, 619-21 in the modern church, 624-37
More, Sir Thomas, his position, 445 appointed Chancellor, 449 on sheep-farming, 474
Morone, Cardinal, asked to aid in furthering clerical marriage, 541
Morrison, Sir Richard, on resumption of church lands, 483
Mortal sin, Wickliffe’s definition of, 379
Morton, Archbishop, his visitation, 399
Mosaic Law, materialism of, 21
Mothers, residence of, forbidden, 138, 331
Mount Lebanon, Synod of, in 1736, 91
Mozarabic ritual, contest over, 304
Mucius, his blind obedience, 102
Muhlberg, battle of, 441
Mulieres subintroductæ, forbidden by Council of Nicæa, 53 allowed in modern times, 626
Muncer and the Anabaptists, 438
Munster, Council of, in 1279, 575 in 1652, 558 impossibility of reform, in 16th cent., 548 proportion of clergy in, 631
Mutilation, practice of, 40
Mutilés de Russie, sect of, 41
Mylitta, 21
Mynecena, 173
Myrc, John, his Instructions, 400 on confessor and penitent, 574
Myrror of Justice on married clerks, 291
Mystic rewards of virginity, 347
Nalanda, Buddhist monastery of, 95
Namur, Synods of, in 1604 and 1639, 562 in 1698, 576 in 1742, 577
Nanno of Verona protects married priests, 151
Nantes, Council of, in 895, 138 Edict of, 500
Naples, children of ecclesiastics in, 335 position of priests’ concubines in, 339 tax on concubines in, 399 clerical marriage proposed in 18th century, 583 numbers of clergy in, 588, 631 civil marriage in, 606, 607 restrictions on monachism in 1820, 609 Council of, in 1576, 553 in 1699, 574
Napoleon I. reëstablishes religion, 595 prohibits clerical marriage, 597
Napoleon III. favors monachism, 614, 617-8
Narbonne, Council of, in 1551, 516 in 1609, 560
Nature, crimes against, 137, 332, 548
Nausea, Frederic, on priestly marriage, 423
Nazirate, the Jewish, 22
Neocæsarea, Council of, in 314, 36, 51
Neo-Platonism, influence of, 39
Nestorians, the, 91, 92
Netherlands, reception of Council of Trent, 547, 553 troubles of, caused by clerical corruption, 557 restrictions on monachism, 609
Neustria, reforms in, 132
New Grenada, corruption of church in, 563 abuse of confessional in, 572 suppression of monasteries in, 609
Nicæa, Council of, its relation to celibacy, 53 celibacy attributed to, 555
Nicæa, canon of, its enforcement, 84 renewed by Greek church, 91 enforced by Gregory I., 124 enforcement attempted in 744, 132 in 9th century, 136 in England, in 12th century, 277 by Council of Coyanza, in 1050, 303 in Anglican church, 494 applied to female relatives, 138, 331, 628 relaxation of, in 1536 and 1548, 518, 525 by Council of Trent, 538 efforts to enforce, in 17th century, 561 disregarded in modern times, 626
Nicetas Pectoratus, his defence of Greek church, 191
Nicholas de Clemanges (see _Clemanges_).
Nicholas I. enforces the rule of celibacy, 139 his relaxation of the rules, 141 on sacraments of sinful priests, 194
Nicholas II., his election, 192 his reforms, 194, 197, 199 he intervenes in Milanese troubles, 213 his canons on celibacy renewed, 227 he enforces celibacy in France, 255 his death, 200
Nicholas III., his efforts with Greek church, 328
Nicholas V., regulations of, 397
Nicholas the deacon, 34
Nicolites, heresy of, 34 priestly marriage ascribed to, 191, 201 married priests stigmatized as, 211 abjuration of, in Milan, 214 condemnation by C. of Piacenza, 221 in Germany, in 12th century, 318
Nigel of Ely, his revolt, 281
Niklaushausen, Hans of, 405
Nimptschen, escape of nuns from, 425
Nismes, residence of relatives forbidden, 332
Noailles, Cardinal, on absolution by guilty confessor, 576
Nobla Leyczon, La, 373, 374
Nomocanon of Photius, 87
Norbert, St., reforms effected by, 265
Nordhausen, Council of, in 1105, 244
Norfolk, married priests ejected in, 480
Norfolk, Duke of, suppresses the Pilgrimage of Grace, 456 introduces the Six Articles, 467
Normandy, condition of church in 10th century, 155 enforcement of celibacy in 12th century, 268, 319
North, Sir Edward, obtains the Charter-House, 451
Northmen, effect of their incursions, 139
Northumberland, Earl of, his insurrection in 1569, 496
Northumbrian priests, rules for, 168
Norway, rights of illegitimates in, 197
Nowell, Dean, on Council of Trent, 537
Nucius, Nicander, on English monasteries, 452, 458, 469
Nullity of marriage in orders introduced in 1123, 313 at Council of Trent, 536
Nunneries, disorders of, under Carlovingians, 137 in 10th century, 152 in 12th century, 264, 282, 318 in 13th century, 268 in 14th century, 340 in 15th century, 389, 393, 399 in 16th century, 451, 526, 527 abuse of confessional in, 572
Nuns, shaving of head prohibited, 104 punishment for unchastity, 131 seduction of, a capital offence, 136 their scandalous lives under Carlovingians, 137 test for their virtue, 292 their residence with monks, in Spain, 305 wives of monks must become, 324 ordered to sleep singly, 332 Lollard denunciations of them, 381 apostate, claimed by the church, 424 their emancipation, in the Reformation, 425, 427, 435 ejected, held to chastity in England, 469 their numbers in England, 471 married, divorce of, 480 their corruption by confessors, 523, 574, 586, 588 their trial by Inquisition, 588 secularized in Italy, 610 marriage of (see _Marriage_).
Nürnburg, Diet of, in 1522, 424, 431 in 1523, 69, 413, 424 secularization of Augustinians, 425 friars deprived of superintendence of nuns, 432
Nurses of priests’ children, their position, 306
Nursia, priest of, case of, 124
Oath of Knight Templars, 362 prescribed for French clergy, 589
Obedience, monachal, nature of, 102
Observances common to Catholicism and Buddhism, 35 and Mazdeism, 44
Odo of Canterbury, his indifference to celibacy, 166
Odo of Toul on relaxation of discipline, 326
Ogilby, Marion, 503
Old Catholics, schism of, 604
Olmutz, Synod of, in 1342, 338 in 1413, 383 in 1591, 555
Oral Law, development of, 24 burdens imposed by, 26
Orange, Council of, in 441, 60, 76
Ordeal, its use in ecclesiastical trials, 140
Ordericus Vitalis, 156, 176
Order of widows, apostolic, 96
Orders, military, the, 362 mendicant, the, 375
Orders, religious, their abolition recommended, 523, 587 unauthorized, suppressed in France, 621
Orders, holy, in Wickliffe’s reforms, 379
Ordination dissolves marriage, 313, 536 indelible under Wickliffe, 379 in modern France, 600-1 minimum age for, 624 sacrament of, attacked by Luther, 418 superior to marriage, 314, 642
Oriesis, St., rule of, 101
Origen, asceticism condemned by, 33 his self-mutilation, 40
Origenism, influence of, 86
Original sin, Council of Trent on, 640
Orihuella, Council of, in 1600, 557, 562, 574
Orleans, Council of, in 511, 80 in 533, 60, 80 in 538, 69, 80 in 541 and 549, 80
Ormanetto, Niccolo, his mission to Bavaria, 536
Orthodox Brethren, the, 375, 385
Orzechowski, Stanislas, case of, 540
Osber, Council of, in 1062, 201
Osbern, his life of St. Dunstan, 166
Osiander on virginity of the Virgin, 69
Osius of Cordova, influence of, 51
Osnabruck, Synods of, in 1625, 1628, 556, 558
Osorius on marriage of military orders, 365
Ossory, Council of, in 1320, 299
Oswald, St., his reforms, 169
Oswalde’s Law, charter of, 169
Otfrid of Watten, his troubles, 260
Othlonus, his temptations, 188
Otho I. deposes John XII., 144 condemns priestly marriage, 150 on sons of priests, 229
Otho IV., his league with John of England, 283
Otho of Constance, case of, 229
Otto of Ostia, his mission to Constance, 229
Otto, Cardinal, constitutions of, 288, 291
Ottoboni, constitutions of, 291 in Scotland, 301
Oxford, Council of, in 1222, 288 University of, on Wickliffe, 379 reform proposed by, 394 See of, created, 460
Paccanaristes, 613
Pachomius, rule of, 101
Paderborn, Synod of, in 1548, 528 proportion of clergy in, 631
Pagan priests, restrictions on, 49-50
Paleario, Aonio, on Council of Trent, 520
Palencia, Council of, in 1129, 308 in 1388, 311
Palermo, civil marriage valid in, 606
Palestine, monachism introduced in, 97
Panzini on condemnation of marriage, 47 on the suppression of religious orders, 610 on clerical morality, 632 is condemned as a heretic, 602, 642
Papacy, degradation of, in 10th cent., 144 in 11th century, 176 released from subjection, 192 election limited to Roman clergy, 200 distrust inspired by, 395 restrictions on it in England, 417, 517 opposition to it in England, 444 supremacy abolished in England, 450 restored in England, 482 dependent on celibacy, 536
Papal Court, its immorality, 341, 345 its rapacity, 412, 416 its repugnance for C. of Trent, 519, 522 it hesitates as to celibacy in 18th century, 584 number of women in, 1882, 628
Papal dispensations, their effect, 322, 397 sale of, 321, 322, 345, 398, 516, 517, 522 admitted by Council of Trent, 535, 642 for married priests, 407, 442
Papal infallibility in Vatican Council, 608
Papalists known as Paterins, 237
Paphnutius, story of, 56 quoted in the Reformation, 419
Paraguay, suppression of monasteries in, 609
Parajika rules, in Buddhism, 94
Paregorius, case of, 84
Paris, Council of, in 615, 114 in 1074, 256 in 1212, 270, 332 in 1323, 351 in 1521 and 1528, 515 Huguenot Synod of, in 1559, 498 diocese of, absolution in, 576 Parlement of, regulates monastic orders, 585
Parker, Archbishop, his marriage, 472 his rejoinder to Martin, 480 his promotion, 487 he obtains priestly marriage from Elizabeth, 488 his visitation of 1567, 491 he remonstrates with Elizabeth, 493 he evades an extradition question, 513
Parker, Mrs., Elizabeth’s insolence to, 491
Parkyns, his account of Abyssinian church, 93
Parlement of Paris regulates monastic orders, 585
Parliament (English) confirms supremacy of Henry VIII., 450 enacts the Six Articles, 467 modifies the Six Articles, 471 legalizes priestly marriage, 473 commands respect for it, 476 reactionary measures under Mary, 478 repeals the laws of Henry VIII., 482 on confessional manuals, 634
Parliament (Scotch) of 1542, 503 of 1560, 506
Parliamentary Abbots in 1539, 458
Parma, trouble with married priests in, 222
Partidas, Las Siete, marriage forbidden in, 309
Partner in guilt, absolution by, 575-8, 633
Paschal II., his efforts to enforce celibacy, 244 enforces celibacy in Denmark, 253 in Britanny, 259 in Flanders, 262 in Spain, 305 on ministration of married priests, 275 on children of priests, 276
Passau, enforcement of celibacy in, 230 Council of, in 1284, 338 troubles of, in 1431, 395 Transaction of, 443
Paterins, origin of the name, 211 their heresy, 207 their doctrines, 367 German papalists so called, 237
Patmore, Thomas, punishment of, 462
Patra, the Buddha’s begging-dish, 35
Patrician heresy, 45
Patrick, St., his classification of merit, 46 founds Irish church, 159 celibacy in his church, 76 Synod of, in 672, 160
Patronage, abuse of, France, 16th cent., 515
Paul, St., his liberalizing views, 26 his asceticism, 31 he enjoins abstinence from women, 49 on ministration of women, 60 his order of widows, 96
Paul III. prevents reconciliation with Lutherans, 441 grants dispensations for married priests, 442 excommunicates Henry VIII., 455 convokes Council of Trent, 520 attempts a reform of the church, 516, 522 obliged to abandon it, 523
Paul IV. pronounces Savonarola orthodox, 386 on English church-lands, 483 on abuse of confessional, 568 puts his own “Consilium” in the Index, 523
Paul V. on abuse of confessional, 569
Paul of Samosata, case of, 42
Paul the Thebæan, the first anchorite, 97
Paula, Francisco de, advocates clerical marriage, 602
Pauline Christianity, 27
Paupers, monastic vows taken only by, 168
Pavia, Council of, in 1022, 178 schismatic Synod of, in 1076, 219, 220
Payne, Peter, 382
Peasants’ War, the, 435
Peckham of Canterbury, efforts of, 291
Pedro de Luna, legate to Spain, 310
Pekin, number of Buddhist monks in, 95
Pelagius I. endeavors to enforce the canons, 123 separates wives of subdeacons, 124
Pelagius II., his relaxation of rules, 122
Peñafiel, Council of, in 1302, 310
Penance of married priests under Mary, 481 term of, for infraction of canons, 80, 157, 160 for unchastity, 169
Penitential of Theodore on marriage, 48
Penitentials, coarseness of, 566, 634
Penitentiary, taxes of the, 428
Pepin d’Heristel, policy of his house, 127
Pepin-le-Bref reforms the clergy, 132 his policy, 134
Pères de la Foi, 613
Périgord, Manichæism in, in 1147, 207
Persecution of Manichæans, 43
Persecution of monks by Leo the Isaurian, 90 by Valens, 99 of married priests, 234, 423 of Catholics in Scotland, 512 of celibacy under the Terror, 593
Perth, monasteries destroyed in, 508
Peru, corruption of church of, 564-5
Perushim, 25
Peter, St., his view of Christ’s mission, 26
Peter d’Ailly on corruption of priests, 350 on nunneries, 389 he condemns Men of Intelligence, 385
Peter of Antioch, 107
Peter Cantor on clerical morals, 265 on false accusations, 369
Peter of Capua, Cardinal, enforces celibacy in Poland, 251
Peter, Cardinal, exhorted to suppress marriage, 203
Peter Comestor deprecates celibacy, 325
Peter Martyr, tumult in Oxford against, 474 exhumation of his wife, 484
Peter the Venerable, miracle related by, 266 he refutes the Petrobrusians, 370
Peter de Vinea on official venality, 284
Peter Waldo, his career, 372
Peterboro’, the first bishop of, 454 See of, created, 460
Petrarch, his opinion of papal court, 342
Petrobrusian heresy, 370
Petronio, Marco, on clerical morality, 631
Peutwitz, escape of nuns from, 425
Peyrinnis, Laurent de, regulations of, 562
Pfaffenkind, 336
Pharisees, 25
Philibert of Sedan on clerical marriage, 594
Philip of Burgundy, bishop of Utrecht, 429
Philip of Savoy, his career, 290
Philip II. prevents the granting of clerical marriage, 544 his policy with regard to Council of Trent, 547, 553 he supports St. Charles Borromeo, 551
Philippe, frère, of the Écoles Chrétiennes, 617, 620
Philo on Therapeutæ, 26
Phlebotomy of monks prohibited, 138
Phœbe the deacon, 60
Photinus, 39 his heresy as to the Virgin, 68
Physicians, prelates not to be, 227
Piacenza, Bishop of, aids to elect Cadalus, 200 Council of, in 1095, 221 trouble in, 222
Pibo of Toul inquires as to sacerdotal marriage, 243
Picardi, 385
Pictish church, character of, 160
Piedmont, priestly marriage in, 202 monastic orders suppressed in, 609 number of clergy in, 630
Pier-Leone, antipope, his character, 341
Pierre de Bruys, 370
Piers Ploughman, Vision of (see _Langlande_).
Piers Ploughman, Creed of, 352 on Franciscans, 376
Pietro Igneo excommunicates married priests, 222
Pietro, schismatic Bishop of Lucca, 222
Pietro de Santa Maria enforces celibacy in Bohemia, 246
Pignan, disorders of canons of, 573
Pilgrimage of Grace, the, 455
Pilgrims, female, dangers to, 164 deterred from visiting Rome, 145
Pinytus of Gnosus, his asceticism, 34
Pisa, Council of, failure of its reforms, 413
Pistoia, trouble with married priests in, 222 state of convents of, 586 Council of, in 1786, 587
Pius II. on the origin of celibacy, 29 he favors clerical marriage, 406 he increases the annates of Mainz, 412
Pius III. his Bull of Reformation, 523
Pius IV. on the origin of celibacy, 29 he admits the story of Paphnutius, 56 he reconvokes the Council of Trent, 521 he temporizes with demand for clerical marriage, 531 he swears his prelates to support vows of chastity, 533 he approves his legates’ tergiversation, 535 he concedes the cup to German laity, 541 his treatment of Orzechowski, 541 he inclines to grant clerical marriage, 544 but at length refuses, 545 he orders reception of C. of Trent, 547 on abuse of confessional, 568
Pius V. admits that heresy is justified by clerical immorality, 430 his accession, 547 his reforms, 548-50 he suppresses the Umiliati, 552 his Bull Contra Sodomitas, 578 is stigmatized as a Lutheran, 641
Pius VI. on abuse of confessional, 578
Pius VIII. offers to permit clerical marriage, 598
Pius IX. on dissolution of priestly marriage, 317 he resists clerical marriage, 601 his organization of the Vatican Council, 603 he denounces civil marriage, 605 growth of church under him, 608 his policy on monastic vows, 610-11 on absolution for solicitation, 633
Podiebrads, the, of Bohemia, 384
Poissy, Colloquy of, on virginity of the Virgin, 69 its result, 559
Poitiers, Council of, in 1000, 157 in 1078, 256 Huguenot Synod of, in 1560, 559 Bishop of, on degradation of clergy, 638
Poland, enforcement of celibacy in, 251 its alliance with Bohemia, 384 its complaints of papal exactions, 397 clerical celibacy questioned in 15th century, 409 clerical marriage demanded in 1556, 529 case of Orzechowski, 540 reception of Council of Trent, 547 celibacy discussed in 18th century, 584
Pole, Cardinal, on need of reformation, 522 his legatine powers, 478 is installed as legate, 482 he enforces celibacy, 483 he orders exhumation of Peter Martyr’s wife, 484 he forbids withdrawal of married priests, 485 his death, 486
Political importance of celibacy, 201 influence of married priests in 1061, 200 of monachism, 106 of Belgian clergy, 623 teaching of monachism, 617-8
Pollution of priests among the Jews, 22
Polygamy of Jews and Christians, 38 of priesthood, 172, 181, 247 permitted by John of Leyden, 438
Pomerania, clerical morals in 15th cent., 401
Pomeranius on Luther’s marriage, 425
Pontanus on Alexander VI., 345
Pontigny, Abbot of, punished, 404
Poor Men of Lyons, 373
Poor-laws, English, commencement of, 460
Poor, relief of, in Scotland, 508
Pope (see _Papal_).
Pope, Simon, case of, 479
Poppo of Brixen created pope, 187
Popular desire for clerical celibacy, 77, 234 invoked by the church, 227, 232
Population, influence of celibacy on, 360
Port of Spain, Council of, in 1854, 626, 633
Portalis promises clerical marriage under the Concordat, 596 forbids it, 597
Portugal, military orders in, 365 abuse of confessional in, 569
Poverty not required in primitive monachism, 101, 112 enforced in rule of Tetradius, 112 in rule of military orders, 362 of Irish church, 297 of Scottish church, 508 of Waldenses, 374 of Franciscans, 376
Poynette, Bishop, his writings, 473, 480
Præmunire for recognizing papal authority, 456
Pragmatic Sanction of 1438, 396
Prague, enforcement of celibacy in, 246 Univ. of, condemns Wickliffe, 382 Councils of, in 1405-7, 383 in 1565, 554, 556 in 1860, 627, 633 clerical marriage in 1578, 555 Confession of Faith of 1432, 384
Pratimoksha, the, 94
Predestinarianism of Huss, 382
Prelates not to be physicians, 227
Prélibation, droit de, 354
Premontré, order of, 264
Priests, children of (see _Children_). divorces of (see _Divorces_). marriage of (see _Marriage_). immorality of (see _Morals_). forbidden to bear arms, in 1049, 189 compelled to keep concubines, 310, 388, 389 privileges of their concubines, 339 reconciled, treatment of, in England, 484, 485 their position, in French Revolution, 590-2 obliged to join in wolf-hunts, 303 purgation of, in Saxon England, 174 punishment of, for unchastity, 131 responsible for parish property, 123 their position in modern France, 637 sinful, their ministrations, 194, 368, 374, 379, 383 their influence, 346 mutually absolve each other, 428 adulterous wives of, to be put away, 39 their wives in Italy, in 8th century, 127 disorders caused by, 147, 175 stigmatized as concubines, 196 reduced to slavery, 242 assumed to be women in service, 489 their resistance to celibacy, 202, 212, 222, 228, 231 their power and privileges, 355 they corrupt the laity, 265, 346, 350, 429, 430, 518, 530, 533, 586, 629
Priesthood, hereditary (see _Hereditary_). becomes indelible, in 12th century, 314 is incompatible with medicine, 227
Priestly caste, danger of creating, 225
Primitive church, asceticism in, 31 marriage permitted in, 28
Privileges accorded to priests’ concubines, 339
Procedure, ecclesiastical, gives practical immunity, 140
Procopius, St., his marriage, 181
Procopius the Hussite, 384
Prodicus, heresy of, 33
Promotion dependent on celibacy, 75, 76
Property, church, threatened by priestly marriage, 123 dilapidation, in 10th cent., 145, 147 in France before 1789, 589
Property, monastic, in England, 459 confiscated in Germany, 434, 437, 439 in France, 589 in Italy, 609
Prosecution of clerical offenders in France, 636
Prostitution encouraged by celibacy, 629
Prota, Dr., on civil marriage, 606
Protection accorded to clerical criminals, 635
Provence, Waldenses in, 375
Prussia, foundation of kingdom of, 434 acknowledges clerical marriage, 604 proportion of clergy in, 630
Prussia, West, morals of clergy, in 15th century, 402
Public school system of France, 623
Punishment, mildness of, for solicitation, 571
Purgation of Anglo-Saxon priests, 174 of married priests, 277
Purgatory maintained by Henry VIII., 454
Puricelli on marriage of Eriberto of Milan, 209 on Ambrosian tradition, 210
Puritanism, influence of, 357
Purity required of pagan priests, 49
Quebec, Councils of, in 1851 and 1854, 626, 633
Quedlinburg, Diet of, in 1085, 239
Quimper, diocese of, hereditary descent in, 259
Quinisext in Trullo, 88
Quito, Council of, in 1869, 627
Radulphus Ardens on Manichæism, 208 on clerical morals, 265
Rainbaldo of Fiesole, 180
Ranald and Raymond, case of, 146
Rapacity of papal court, 412, 416
Rasfeldt, Bishop, his misadventures, 548
Ratherius of Verona on hereditary transmission, 146 his priests all married, 148 his contest with his clergy, 150
Ratisbon, Council of, in 13th century, 248 in 1512, 429 Assembly of, in 1524, 423 Diet of, in 1532, 439 in 1541, 440 Bishop John of, 429
Ratramnus of Corvey on Nicene canons, 55
Rauscher, Cardinal, denounces civil marriage, 605
Ravenna, Council of, in 967, condemns priestly marriage, 150 in 997, 157 in 1568, 553 in 1855, 627
Raymond of Gallicia, 307
Raymond du Puy founds Knights of St. John, 362
Recared I. enforces celibacy, 121
Reconciliation of Imperialist clergy, in 1106, 245 of Anglican clergy, 484, 485 of England to Rome, 482
Reformation, the, in Germany, 410-43 caused by clerical corruption, 430, 514, 516, 518, 527, 529, 548, 556 sqq. in England, 444-97 in France, 498-500 in Scotland, 501-13
Reforms proposed at Constance, 391 undertaken at Bâle, 395 attempted at Trent, 538
_Réfractaires_ priests, 590
Regency, Council of, in 1523, 424
Reggio, trouble with married priests in, 222
Reginald of Canterbury, his life of St. Malchus, 275
Regino of Pruhm on residence of female relatives, 138 on legalized concubinage, 196
Regnier the Albigensian, 367
Relatives, residence of (see _Residence_).
Relaxation for abuse of confessional, 569
Relics, false, sold by monks, 102 ridiculed by Erasmus, 414 impostures of, in England, 458
Renan, Ernest, on morality of clergy, 625
Renaud of Rheims protects Flemish priests, 261
Residence of relatives forbidden, 138, 331, 555, 560 its danger, 628 of women, canon of Nicæa on, 53 Emperor Honorius on, 55 prohibition enforced, 84 in Greek church, 91 by Gregory I., 124 forbidden, in 744, 132 legislation on, 136 tolerated in Spain, 303, 307, 309 regulated in 1536, 518 over forty years old permitted, 525 permitted by Council of Trent, 538 regulations for, 554, 560, 561 in Spanish colonies, 563 modern rules for, 626, 628
Resistance of clergy to celibacy, 202, 212, 222, 228, 231
Responsibility of the church, 355 thrown upon God, 536, 624
Restoration, monachism under the, 613
Restrictions on monachism by Valens, 99 by Majorian, 105 in the East, 107 in modern times, 608, 613, 621 on clerical marriage by Elizabeth, 489
Results of celibacy, 330
Reuchlin and the theologians, 413
Revolution, French, its treatment of the church, 588-94 tolerates Sisters of Charity, 613 of 1830, its influence on monachism, 614
Rhea, worship of, 50
Rheims, Council of, in 874, 141 in 1049, 189 in 1119, 267 in 1130, 314, 315 in 1148, 315 in 1408, 350 in 1564, 559 in 1583, 560 in 1849, 626
Rhodes, Knights of, 362, 366, 458
Ribadeneira, his life of Loyola, 517
Ricci, Scipione dei, 587
Richard of Albano appealed to, 261
Richard of Dover on suppression of monasteries, 455, 456 on starving out of monasteries, 457 on false relics, 458 intercedes for ejected monks, 460
Richard the Fearless reforms Fécamp, 155
Richard Fitz-Neal, his advancement, 281
Richard of Marseilles, papal legate to Spain, 304
Richmond, Thos., case of, 382
Richstich Landrecht, children of clerks in, 336
Riculfus of Soissons on incest, 138
Ridley, Bishop, prepares the Forty-two Articles, 475
Rigobert, St., of Rheims, 129
Ritualists, Anglican, on marriage, 476
Rivera on toleration of adultery, 566
Robber Synod at Ephesus, 107
Robert d’Arbrissel, his reforms, 258, 265
Robert of Artois, case of, 261
Robert, Cardinal, his constitutions, 332
Robert the Frisian enforces celibacy, 260
Robert the Good (Naples) remits fines on concubinage, 339
Robert the Hierosolymitan of Flanders, 261
Robert the Pious, his neglect of celibacy, 179 he burns heretics, 207
Robert of Rouen, his character, 155
Robles, his life of Ximenes, 403
Roderic of Spain repeals Witiza’s laws, 122
Rodolf of Bourges on residence of female relatives, 138
Rodolf of Swabia, his coronation at Mainz, 236
Rodolphus Glaber on simony, 185
Rodriguez on seduction in confessional, 570
Roman clergy, papal election by, 200
Roman Law, concubinage under, 196
Roman Republic, abrogation of monastic vows in 1849, 609
Rome, Council of, in 384, 64, 103 in 721 and 722, 127 in 745, 132 in 826, 196 in 1051, 189 in 1052, 196 in 1057, 192 in 1059, 194 in 1063, 196, 202 in 1066, 216 in 1074, 227 in 1075, 231 in 1076, 229, 232 in 1079, 56 in 1725, 626 pseudo-council under Silvester, 55, 122 avarice of, 397, 412 brothels kept by prelates in, 429 England reconciled to, 482 Germany oppressed by, 412 heretics forbidden in, 70 its influence extended to Ireland, 296 to Spain, 303 jurisdiction of, its limits, 84 its demoralizing effect, 139, 322, 345 surrendered by Alexander IV., 334 morals of Pagan, 32 of Christian, 81, 181, 341, 549, 587 modern political opinions of, 618 number of clergy in, 630 pilgrims deterred from visiting, 145 reforms of Pius V., 550 revision of modern councils at, 628 rule respecting the subdiaconate, 124 supremacy over Milan asserted, 213 toleration of attacks, 15th cent., 387, 417 of sacrilege and lust, 431 of Greek discipline, 640
Romuald the priest, case of, 127
Romuald, St., 186
Rosceline on priests’ children, 276
Rota, priest of, his fate, 236
Rothius on the Nicolites, 34
Rouen, Archbishops of, in 10th cent., 155 Council of, in 1072, 256 in 1148, 372 in 1189, 322 in 1581, 500 in 1850, 626, 633
Roussillon, Edict of, in 1564, 499
Rules of monachism, early, 101 of St. Benedict, 112 of St. Cassianus, 101, 110 of St. Chrodegang, 134 of St. Columba, 160 of St. Oriesis, 101 of St. Pachomius, 101 of St. Tetradius, 112
Rupert of Duits on priestly marriage, 247
Ruremonde, Synod of, in 1570, 562
Russel, Lord, suppresses insurrection in Devon, 475
Russian church, customs of, 91
Rusticus of Narbonne, 76
Sabatati, 373
Saccofori, 44
Sacerdotalism, necessity of celibacy to, 225 popular antagonism to, 368
Sachsenspiegel, children of clerks in, 336
Sacrament of marriage inferior to ordination, 313, 315, 642 of sinful priests, 194, 368, 374, 379, 383
Sacrilege and lust, tolerance for, 431
Sadducees, conservatism of, 24
Sadoleto, Card., on need of reformation, 522
Saignet, his advocacy of clerical marriage, 353, 406
St. Albans, Abbey of, its disorders, 399
St. Caterina di Pistoia, Abbess of, 586
St. Cornelius, church of, charter to, 270
St. Denis, Council of, in 995, 154 Abbey of, its disorders, 264
St. Esprit, Society of, 613
St. Fara, monastery of, its disorders, 264
St. Gildas de Ruys, Abbey of, 264
St. Iago of Compostella, church of, 306
St. James of the Sword, Order of, 363
St. John, Knights of, 362, 366, 458
St. Louis, Council of, in 1858, 627
St. Marco, preservation of, in 1866, 609
St. Martin of Tours, Abbey of, 404
St. Mary of Argenteuil, Convent of, 264
St. Michael, Order of, 365
St. Omer, Synod of, in 1099, 261 in 1583, 560 in 1640, 562
St. Peter of Sens, Abbey of, 153
St. Riquier, Abbey of, its strictness, 404
St. Sabina, Cardinal of, enforces celibacy in Sweden, 253
St. Stephen, church of, in Aretino, 147
St. Ursmar, married canons of, 270
St. Vitus, monks of, reformed by Gregory I., 114
Saintes, monastic school at, case of, 619
Saints in Benedictine Order, 113
Salamanca, Council of, in 1335, 310
Salerno, Council of, in 1596, 553
Salona, Archbishop of, degraded, 188
Salvianus on condition of morals, 81
Salzburg, disorders in 12th century, 247 Archbishop of, demands suppression of clerical marriage, 530 asks for clerical marriage, 539 impossibility of reform, 16th century, 548, 554 XXXth Council of, 350 in 1537, 518 in 1549, 527 in 1562, 531
Sampson, Thos., on position of married clergy, 496
Samson, Nazirate of, 22
Samuel, Nazirate of, 22
Sanadon of Oléron on clerical marriage, 594
Sanders on Cranmer, 470, 474 on delay in authorizing priestly marriage, 488 on Elizabethan clergy, 494
Sandys, Bishop, on delay of priestly marriage, 488 his quarrel with Sir J. Bourne, 496
Sanghadisesa rules, in Buddhism, 95
Sangharamas, Buddhist, 94
Sangreal, the, 35
Sankhya school, 23
Sannazaro on Innocent VIII. and Alexander VI., 345
Sannyasis, class of, 23
Sanseverino, Council of, in 1597, 553
Santafé, Council of, in 1556, 563
Saoshyans, the Zend Messiah, 35
Sarabaitæ, 107, 109, 115
Saragossa, Council of, in 381, 98, 100 in 592, 80
Sarah, Abbess, her fortitude, 188
Sardinia, civil marriage enacted, 605 suppression of monasteries, 609
Sarpi, Fra Paolo, on Tridentine points of faith, 641
Satan, his estimate of chastity, 348 his gratitude to the church, 351 venerated by Begghards, 377
Saturnilus, heresy of, 33
Saurin _vs._ Starr and Kennedy, 611
Savonarola, 386 on priestly morals, 399 on morals of nunneries, 403 on abuse of confessional, 567
Savoy, priestly marriage in, 203 in the Revolution, 592
Saxon bishops ejected by Normans, 271 married priests in Ireland, 298 (See, also, _Anglo-Saxon_.)
Saxony, commencement of priestly marriage in, 419
Sbinco of Prague, his reforms, 383
Scandal more dreaded than sin, 518, 565, 567, 568, 571, 577, 579, 619, 628, 634-5
Scandals of agapetæ, 41
Scandinavia, morals of bishops, 389
Scania, demand for priestly marriage in, 252
Scaren, plunder of bishopric of, 279
Schening, Council of, in 1548, 253
Schism of 1061, influence of celibacy on, 200
Schmalkalden, League of, its founding, 438 its overthrow, 441 its negotiations with Henry VIII., 466
Schmidt, Conrad, his heresy, 385
Schmidt, Johann, Bishop of Vienna, 439
School system, public, in France, 623
Schools of monastic orders in France, 617-21
Scotland, its church, founded by Columba, 160 claim of York on, 161 celibacy in early church of, 161 position of concubines in, 197 enforcement of celibacy in, 299 Council of, in 1225, 301 the Reformation in, 501-13
Scribes, their influence, 24
Scythianus, precursor of Manes, 44
Sebastian of Portugal on papal dispensations, 517
Second marriages (see _Marriage_).
Secular power invoked to regulate monachism, 100 protects married priests, 151, 152 its assistance invoked, 178, 203, 293, 294, 309, 559, 560 celibacy subject to, 583
Secularization of church property in Germany, 427, 435, 437 in England, 454-60 in France, 589 in Italy, 609 of education in France, 623
Seduction of nuns a capital offence, 136
Segenfrid of Le Mans, evil courses of, 152
Sendomir, Agreement of, 385
Sens, Council of, in 1850, 626
Seraphin of Gran on marriage, 249
Sergius III., his immorality, 144
Serfs, ordination of, 155
Servant, priest’s wife assumed to be a, 489
Servitude of sons of priests, 155 of their wives, 189, 242, 309
Severus repeals Majorian’s laws, 106
Seville, Council of, in 590, 80 in 1512, 400 dress of concubines regulated, 517 abuse of confessional in, 569
Sextus Philosophus on mutilation, 40
Shaving, resistance of clergy to, 553
Shaxton, Bishop, opposes the Six Articles, 469
Sheep-farming, discontent caused by, 474
Shrewsbury, hereditary benefices in, 272
Sicily, monachism reformed by Gregory I., 114 celibacy of subdeacons, 124 children of ecclesiastics in, 335 civil marriage valid, 606 episcopal convention of, in 1850, 626
Sickingen, Franz von, 421
Siedeler, Jacob, fate of, 419
Siegfrid of Mainz, his troubles with celibacy, 231
Siete Partidas on origin of celibacy, 29 celibacy enjoined in, 309
Sigismund (Emp.) advocates clerical marriage, 406
Silesia, heresy of John of Pirna, 378 marriage in post-Tridentine church, 555 clerical marriage asked for in 1831, 601
Silvester I. on abuse of confession, 567 forged canons of, 122, 137
Silvester II. on celibacy, 157
Silvester III., election of, 183
Simon, Jules, opposes secularized education, 623
Simoniacal priests, sacraments of, 195
Simony, in 11th century, 185, 214 its repression by Leo IX., 189 by Gregory VII., 229 papal, 398
Simple vows prevent marriage, 321
Simplicius, St., of Autun, case of, 78
Sin (see _Scandal_). its influence on sacraments, 194 Wickliffe’s definition of, 379
Siricius makes no reference to Nicene canon, 55 commands celibacy, 65, 72 on heresy of Bonosus, 68 of Jovinian, 69 on disregard of vows, 100 on monastic unchastity, 103
Sister, residence of (see _Residence_).
Sisters of Charity, 612-3
Sithieu, Abbey of, its strictness, 404
Sitten, Synod of, in 1500, 402
Six Articles (see _Articles_).
Sixtus III. on marriage, 47 his trial, 82
Sixtus IV., his vices, 344 his sale of preferments, 398
Sixtus V. on children of cardinals, 550
Skopsis, sect of, 41
Slave children of priests emancipated, 563
Slavery for wives of priests, 189, 242, 389 for their sons, 155
Slaves, female, their union with priests, 249
Slavonic church, its connection with the Greek, 244 adherence to priestly marriage, 251
Sleidan on organized concubinage, 353
Sleswick, clerical morals in 15th cent., 402
Smaragdus on monastic impostors, 115
Smith, Dr. Richard, on clerical matrimony, 474
Smith, Sir Thomas, on celibacy, 497
Socrates on the story of Paphnutius, 56 on observance of celibacy, 86
Soissons, Synod of, in 744, 132 Manichæism in 1114, 207
Solicitation (see _Confessional_).
Somerset the Protector encourages the reformers, 472
Sons of priests (see _Children_).
Sorbonne, the, condemns Hildebrandine doctrine, 382 condemns Jean Lallier, 408 refuses conference with Melanchthon, 440
Sormitz, escape of nuns from, 425
Sousa, Ant. de, on solicitation, 571
Sozomen relates the story of Paphnutius, 56
Spain, celibacy first enforced in, 50, 66 disregarded in 375, 65 legislation in 400, 75 continued efforts required, 80 morals of, in 4th century, 81 monasticism in 7th century, 115 celibacy in Arian church, 120 reforms attempted by Catholicism, 121 church property guarded, 123 concubines, position of, 196, 197 enforcement of celibacy in, 302 priestly marriage universal, 303 delay in abrogating priestly marriage, 305 immorality of clergy, 311 military orders, 363 demoralization in 15th century, 400 Ximenes and the Franciscans, 402 morals in 16th century, 517 priestly marriage demanded, 556 concubinage of ecclesiastics, 557 the Colonial church, 563 abuse of confessional, 568-74 case of Father Mena, 579 census of the church in 1764, 588 civil marriage agitated, 605
Spalatin, his record of priestly marriages, 422
Spalatro, Council of, in 925, 149 in 1185, 250
Spaldwick, Vicar of, scandal caused by, 485
Spandel, Chris., on corruption of clergy, 556
Spanish church, its independence of Rome, 302 colonies, corruption of church in, 563
Spelman on Anglo-Saxon monachism, 173
Spifame, Bishop of Nevers, 499
Spiti, number of monks in, 95
Spotswood claims extradition of Baron’s wife, 513
Sraddha, 23
Standards of morality, 269, 347, 349, 627
State, permission of the, required by monastic orders in 1760, 585 its subjection to the church, 618, 639
Statistics of abuse of confessional, 573, 636 of Buddhist monachism, 95 of clergy in France, 593, 637 in Germany, 630-1 in Italy, 630 in Naples, 631 of Company of Jesus, 615 of monachism in Austria, 615 in Belgium, 615 in France, 614, 615, 617
Stephen IX. forces episcopate on Damiani, 186 his efforts at reform, 192 intervenes in Milanese troubles, 212
Stephen, King (England), his siege of Devizes, 281
Stephen of Halberstadt on the Imperialists, 239
Sterckx, Archbishop, his “Petronilla,” 629
Stipends of married priests guaranteed, 594
Stokesley of London on suppression of monasteries, 454 on priestly marriage, 462
Storck and the Anabaptists, 438
Strassburg, popular protection of married priests, 423 Synod of, in 1549, 528 in 1687, 562
Strype, his description of English clergy, 476
Sturmius, Balt., his marriage, 421
Subdeacons allowed to marry, 39 their marriage forbidden in 530, 86 separated from their wives, 124 marriage of, forbidden in 952, 149 subjected to the canon, 196, 204 when married, removed from benefice, 242 their celibacy in Dalmatia, 250 their marriage in Hungary, 250 and in Austria, 1267, 251 their celibacy in Denmark, 253 rules in England, 274 exceptions in favor of immorality, 320 their marriage permitted, 324
Suchuen, abuse of confessional in, 578
Suczinsky, Dean, his marriage, 604
Suffolk, Duke of, suppresses insurrection, 455
Suger of St. Denis imprisons Éon de l’Étoile, 372
Suidger of Bamberg created pope, 184
Sulpicius Severus, St., favors Vigilantius, 71
Sulpitius of Bourges, 118
Suppression of monasteries in Germany, 427, 435 in England, 448, 454 means adopted for, 457 financial results of, 460 by Joseph II., 584 in France, 589 in recent times, 608-9
Suzor of Tours on clerical marriage, 594
Swabia, enforcement of celibacy in, 233
Sweden, position of concubines in, 197 enforcement of celibacy in, 252 Englishmen as bishops, 278 morals of bishops, 389
Swithin, St., marriage of, 165
Switzerland, celibacy at Constance, 229 clerical morals of, 13th century, 340 organized concubinage in, 353 Zwingli’s movement, 421 demoralization in 16th century, 429 clerical marriage in modern times, 601
Syllabus of 1864 on dissolution of marriage, 317 its political teachings, 618 argued away by Dupanloup, 642
Symmachus prohibits marriage of nuns, 111 on confessors and penitents, 567
Synesius, case of, 85
Taas, Hussite victory of, 382
Taborites, the, 383
Tacitus on morality of Germans, 118
Taillard on origin of celibacy, 30
Talasius of Angers on celibacy, 79
Talesperianus of Lucca, charter of, 127
Talleyrand secularizes church property, 589
Talon, Omer, on marriage of apostates, 501
Tamar and Judah, 21
Tanner, Dr., on number of ejected priests, 480
Tapas, character of, 24
Tarento, Archb. of, advocates marriage, 631
Tarragona, Council of, in 516, 80 in 1591, 562 in 1717, 626
Tatianus, heresy of, 33
Taxes of the Penitentiary, 428, 517
Teachers, character of monastic, 618
Teaching, political, of monachism, 618
Tedaldo, Archbishop of Milan, 219
Templars, military order of, 362
Temporal possessions (see _Secularization_).
Temporalities of church endangered by marriage, 63, 407 of married clerks, seizure of, 258
Tenure of chastity, benefices held by, 311
Terbinthus, teacher of Manes, 44
Terouane, marriage of priests in, 262
Terror, the, position of priests under, 590 persecution of celibacy, 593 Sisters of Charity tolerated, 613
Tertullian denounces second marriages, 36 on virginity of the Virgin, 68 on merits of widows and virgins, 96 on accusations against Christians, 208
Test, clerical marriage as a, 592
Tetradius, St., Rule of, 112
Tetzel, sale of indulgences by, 413
Teutonic Knights, order of, 366 marriage of, 434 tribes, virtue of, 82
Thane-right, 173
Theatricals in nunneries, 527
Theocracy proposed by Gregory VII., 223
Theodatus of Corvey, success of, 227
Theodore of Canterbury, his penitential, 48, 162 on sacrament of sinful priests, 195
Theodore Studita on monastic morals, 109
Theodoric of Verdun, his remonstrances, 233
Theodoric a Niem on John XXII., 344 on Swedish bishops, 389
Theodosius the Great suppresses polygamy, 38 prohibits shaving of nuns, 104 restricts monachism, 108
Theodosius of Jerusalem, 107
Theodulf of Orleans on incest, 138
Theodwin and Albert at Council of Avranches, 319
Theophilus of Alexandria, rigor of, 349
Theophylact on “unius uxoris vir,” 38
Therapeutæ, 26
Thessalonica, celibacy enforced in, 86
Thibaut of Oxford on priests’ children, 276
Thomas Aquinas (see _Aquinas_).
Thomas à Becket on simony, 284
Thomas of Cantinpré on corrupting influence of priesthood, 350
Thomas of Walden on Wickliffe, 379
Thomas, Wm., on English monasteries, 452
de Thou, on refusal to grant clerical marriage, 544
Thuringia, the Brethren of the Cross, 385
Thurles, Council of, in 1850, 626, 633
Tibet, number of monks in, 95
Tibullus on purity required for sacrifice, 49
Timotheists, their heresy, 376
Tithes, seizure of, by the laity, 258
Toledo, Council of, in 398, 196, 566 in 400, 75, 105 in 531, 80 in 589, 80, 120 in 597 and 633, 80 in 653, 80, 121 in 655, 121 in 675, 80 in 1565 and 1582, 562, 574 discipline of, in Spanish church, 302
Toleration of attacks by Rome, 386, 415, 417
Toleration, condemned by the church, 618
Tonsure, differences as to, 161, 163
Toribio, St., of Peru, 564
Torné of Bourges, his marriage, 591
Tortosa, Council of, in 1429, 311, 364
Torture not allowed in trials for solicitation, 571
Toul, hereditary transmission in, 266 relaxation of discipline in, 326
Toulouse, Council of, in 1056, 255, 304 in 1119, 208, 267 in 1850, 626, 633 spread of heresy in, 207, 370
Tournay, Synod of, in 1520, 575 in 1574, 560
Tournon, Cardinal, his efforts at reform, 515
Tours, Council of, in 460, 80 in 567, 80, 120 in 925, 146 in 1060, 198, 255 in 1096, 263 in 1163, 319 in 1583, 560 in 1849, 626
Trani, married bishop deposed, 197 civil marriage valid in, 606
Transaction of Cadam, 439 of Passau, 443
Transsubstantiation, Wickliffe’s error on, 378
Treason, English monks punished for, 451, 457
Treglia, Andrea, case of, 606
Tréguier, residence of relatives forbidden, 332
Trent, Council of, 514-45 expectations with regard to it, 441, 443 it authorizes dispensations for married priests, 442 its canons on matrimony, 534-6 on adultery, 566 its non-reception in France, 546 its reception elsewhere, 547 failure of its reforms, 548 sqq. enforcement of its canons, 552, 553, 554 it avoids reference to abuse of confessional, 568 on power of absolution, 575 on age of ordination, 624 on gift of chastity, 624 on residence of women, 626, 628 on celibacy as matter of faith, 640
Trèves, persecution of married clergy in, 234 morals of clergy, in 12th century, 248 Archbp., asks for clerical marriage, 539 effort for clerical marriage, in 1833, 601 proportion of clergy in, 631 Synod of, in 1548, 525 in 1549, 526 in 1678, 562
Trialogus, Wickliffe’s, 380
Tribunal, mixed, for married priests, 257
Tribur, assembly of, in 1076, 237
Trinidad and Mercede, Orders of, 311
Trithemius on Benedictine saints, 113 on monastic immorality, 404
Tropea, sister of Pier-Leone, 342
Trosley, Council of, in 909, 141
Troyes, Synod of, in 1107, 245 in 1128, 362
Tsadukim, hereditary priesthood of, 22 their conservatism, 24
Tuam, Council of, in 1854, 633
Tudeschi, Nich., advocates clerical marriage, 406
Turin, Council of, in 401, 75
Turner, John, penance of, 481
Turquoing, suppression of unauthorized orders in, 622
Tuscany, priestly marriage defended in, 199 clerical morals in 18th century, 586
Tyndale advocates priestly marriage, 462
Ulric, St., of Augsburg on priestly marriage, 149
Ulric of Bohemia founds Abbey of Zagow, 181
Ulric of Tegernsee on bigamy, 181
Umbilicani, 24
Umiliati, their struggle with St. Charles Borromeo, 551
Unchastity, forgiveness for, in False Decretals, 136 punished as homicide, 169
United States, priestly marriage in, 607 morality of clergy in, 625 recent Councils of, 626-7, 633
University Fellows, celibacy of, 492
Urban II. on sacraments of sinful priests, 195 creates Conrad King of Lombardy, 220 reconciles the Milanese clergy, 220 holds Council of Piacenza, 221 enforcement of celibacy attributed to, 225 not recognized in Germany, 241 his enforcement of celibacy, 242 protects Flemish priests, 261 declares marriage incompatible with Orders, 313
Urban III. enforces celibacy in Dalmatia, 250
Urban VIII. on abuse of confessional, 573
Urbicus of Clermont, case of, 73
Urbino, Council of, in 1569, 553 in 1859, 627
Urraca, Queen, 306
Useria, supposed wife of Eriberto of Milan, 209
Utopia, Sir Thomas More’s, 446
Utraquists, the, 384
Utrecht, condition of nunneries, 14th century, 340 reception of Council of Trent in, 553 Synods of, in 1561 and 1565, 554 in 1865, 627, 633
Vagabond monks, 102, 109, 115
Vagabondage, Tudor laws on, 455, 460
Valence, Council of, in 374, 100, 103
Valencia, Council of, in 1255, 309 in 1565, 562
Valens, his restrictions on monachism, 99
Valentinian on clerical morals, 63
Valentinus, heresy of, 33
Valesians, sect of, 40
Valladolid, Council of, in 1322, 310, 364
Vallombrosa, monks of, 183
Vanaprasthas, class of, 23
Varahran I. persecutes Manichæism, 43
Vatican, Council of, in 1870, 603 its decree of infallibility, 608 number of women in, 1882, 628
Vaudois, the, 373
Vedas, doctrine of Tapas in, 24
Vega, Fray Juan de la, 572
Veil, taking the, a marriage with Christ, 104
Velda, Dr., case of, 570
Venality of officials, 253, 278, 284, 293, 312, 321, 327, 332, 337, 339, 345, 396, 401, 433, 517, 522
Venantius of Syracuse, case of, 113
Venezuela, suppression of monasteries in, 609
Venice, relaxation of the canon in, 205 number of priests in, 588 Council of, in 1859, 627
Vercelli, troubles of married priests in, 152
Verdun, reform of monks of, 264
Veringen, Count of, case of, 235
Verneuil, Synod of, in 755, 134
Vernon, Council of, in 845, 139
Verona, trouble with married priests, 151
Vertfeuil, extent of heresy in, 370
Vestal Virgins, 50
Vestments, monastic, salvation ensured by, 335
Veuillot, Louis, on droit de marquette, 355
Vicenza, Council of Trent transferred to, 520
Victimes de l’Amour de Dieu, 613
Victor II., his efforts at reform, 191 enforces celibacy in France, 255
Victor III. on Italian church, 180
Victricius opposes Vigilantius, 71
Vienna, Council of, in 1267, 251 in 1858, 627, 633
Vienne, Council of, in 1060, 198 in 1311, 376
Vigilantius, his resistance to celibacy, 70
Vihara, Buddhist monastery, 94
Villa, father, of Monza, 621
Villiers, Abbé, defends celibacy, 582
Villiers de l’Isle-Adam, 366
Vincent, St., de Paul, 612
Vintimiglia, Nunzio, his negotiations with Maximilian II., 543
Virgil, Polydor, on celibacy in England, 273
Virgin Mary, heresies concerning, 68 her message to Gregory VII., 226
Virginal, Curé of, his opinions, 623
Virginity, extravagant praises of, 45, 347, 349 by Chrysostom, 86 importance attributed to, 98 by the Fraticelli, 377 by Wickliffe, 380 compared with marriage, 46, 47, 96, 318, 347 superiority of, a Tridentine dogma of morals, 536, 641 St. Jerome on its rarity, 624 perpetual, of the Virgin, 68 vows of (see _Vows_).
Virgins, priests to marry none but, 38 number of, in early church, 98 professed (see _Nuns_).
Visconti, Nunzio, on marriage at Trent, 535
Visitation of monasteries by Archbishop Morton, 399 by Archbishop Warham, 447 ordered by Henry VIII., 451 its effect, 453
Vitalis of Mortain preaches reform, 258
Vitry, Jacques de, case of, 398
Vladislas II. on clerical immorality, 401
Vows of chastity, introduction of, 41 not favored in early church, 48 their temporary character, 41, 97 their increasing permanency, 105 rendered irrevocable by Gregory I., 113 infanticide caused by them, 100 are ordered for subdeacons, 124 their perversion, 127 made a prerequisite to holy orders, 179 work dissolution of marriage, 313 difference between simple and formal, 321 are denounced by Lollards, 381 by Luther, 421 are maintained in the Six Articles, 469 prelates at Trent sworn to support them, 533 their observance a point of faith, 641 papal dispensation for, 535, 642 never granted by Pius IX., 611 minimum age for, defined by Pius IX., 611 limited to five years in France, 613
Vows, monastic, rendered indissoluble in the East, 107 of the military orders, 362
Vrie, Theodoric, on clerical immorality, 389
Wahu, Dr., on monastic schools, 619 on cases of clerical prosecution, 636
Wake, Archbishop, his correspondence with Du Pin, 582
Waldemar II. on concubines, 197
Walden, Abbot of, his marriage, 463
Waldo, Peter, 372
Waldenses, the, 373
Waldeck, Count of, his treatment of monks, 435
Wales, celibacy in early church, 163 state of church in 9th century, 171 priestly marriage in 13th century, 285 its persistence, 294
Walter of Orleans on residence of female relatives, 138
Warham, Archbishop, his visitation, 447
Wartburg, Luther’s confinement in, 419
Watten, Priory of, its troubles, 260
Wealth of church, its growth, 63
Wedlock (see _Marriage_).
Wenceslas of Bohemia, his reforms, 383
Wendt, Rev. Mr., case of, 636
Wer-gild of priest, 173 of children of clerks, 336
Western monachism, character of, 109, 112
Westminster, Council of, in 1127, 280 in 1138, 281 short-lived bishopric of, 460 canons of, ejected, 479
Westmoreland, Earl of, his insurrection in 1569, 496
Weston, Dr., story of, 477
Wexford, married priests of, 298
Whitby, Synod of, in 664, 161
Wiburn, Percival, on marriage of Anglican clergy, 495
Wicelius, George, on clerical marriage, 542
Wickliffe on sacraments of sinful priests, 196 his reforms, 378
Widowhood, vows of, license caused by, 127
Widows, priests not to marry, 39 order of, in early church, 42, 96 comparison of, with virgins, 46, 96, 347 professed, marriage of, 110
Wied, Hermann von, his attempts at reform, 518
Wiesbaden, clerical marriage in 1821, 601
Wilfreda, St., 167
William of Bavaria on church corruption, 527
William of Cantilupe enforces celibacy, 288
William of Cologne forbids marriage of monks, 340
William the Conqueror enforces celibacy in Normandy, 257 permits marriage in Britanny, 259 neglects reform in England, 271
William of Hilderniss, 385
William the Lion on concubines, 197 persecutes the clergy, 301
William of Malmesbury on Anglo-Saxon church, 176
William of Paderborn, his failure to reform, 340
William of Sabina, legate to Spain, 310
William of Strassburg excommunicates married priests, 424
Willibrod, St., his labors, 126
Wills, ecclesiastical, providing for children, 337
Winchester, reform of monastery of, 168, 169 Council of, in 1070, 272 in 1076, 273 in 1139, 371 hereditary transmission in, 286
Windsor, Synod of, in 1070, 272
Wine of Eucharist in early church, 44 abstinence from, not recommended, 48
Wishart, George, his trial, 510
Wisigothic laws on clerical celibacy, 121 on church property, 123
Wisigoths of Spain, state of church under, 120
Witgar of Mendlesham, 282
Witiza, his licentious laws, 121
Witnesses, use of ordeal for, 140 married priests not admitted as, 294 four required to prove solicitation, 571
Wittenberg, books of canon law burned at, 418 Synod of, in 1522, 420
Wives, demerit of, 46 adulterous, to be put away, 39 of Huguenot pastors, 498 of Anglican clergy, their position, 496 of bishops, their retention, 85, 88 to be separated, 89 under the Franks, 119 in Gothic Spain, 121 they rank as countesses, 259 their position in Anglican church, 495 consent of, requisite for episcopate, 249 for diaconate, 250, 251 for monastic vows, 324 of monks to become nuns, 114, 205, 324 of priests, their cohabitation permitted, 28, 48 forbidden by Council of Elvira, 50 permitted by Councils of Ancyra and Neocæsarea, 51 and by Council of Nicæa, 53, 54 and through the 4th century, 55, 58, 61, 79 forbidden by Damasus, 64 and by Siricius, 65 forbidden in Gaul and Spain, 75 and in Africa, 73 permitted in the East, 86, 89 custom in modern Russia, 91 their position under the Franks, 120 legislation in Gothic Spain, 121 are to be treated as sisters, 124 in Italy, in 8th century, 127 they cause dilapidation of property, 147 Anglo-Saxon denunciation of, 175 are stigmatized as concubines, 196 their fidelity, 202 their sufferings, 235 are declared slaves of church, 189 are reduced to slavery, 242, 309 their seizure threatened, 261 treatment of, in England, 274, 277, 287 they assist at altar in Germany, 318 are liable to death under the Six Articles, 468 legislation under Queen Mary, 485 are assumed to be serving women, 485 of subdeacons to be separated, 124
Wolff, Christian, on Paphnutius, 57 on Council of Trent, 640
Wolfgang of Ratisbon exhorts to chastity, 152
Wolf-hunts, priests obliged to join in, 303
Wolsey, Cardinal, attacks monastic orders, 447 his fall, 449
Women, abstinence from, in pagan priesthood, 49 not admitted in temple of Hercules, 50 admitted to monasteries, 101 their exclusion from monasteries, 403 their ministration forbidden, 60 their teaching forbidden, 60 discredited as witnesses, 571 rules for, in visiting bishops, 119 residence of (see _Residence_).
Wood, T., on position of Anglican clergy, 497
Worcester, reformation of monks in, 169 Chapter of, disorders of, 491
Works, merits of, in Catholicism, 115 in Calvinism, 498 justification by, in Scotland, 506 in Knox’s confession, 512
Worms, Diet of, in 1076, 234
Wurtzburg, Council of, in 1446, 377 in 1548, 528 character of clergy, in 1521, 431 clerical marriage in, 555
Wu-Tsung, his persecution of Buddhism, 95
Wyatt’s rebellion, suppression of, 478
Ximenes reforms the Franciscans, 402
Yoga system, asceticism of, 23
York, its claim on Scottish church, 161 Council of, in 1195, 288 Wolsey’s reformation at, 447 married priests ejected in, 480
Ypres, Synod of, in 1629, 562 abuse of confessional in 1768, 577
Yves of Chartres (see _Ivo_).
Zabarella, Cardinal, advocates clerical marriage, 406
Zabolcs, Synod of, in 1092, 248
Zaccaria on origin of celibacy, 29 on the Nicene canon, 55 on Gregory of Nazianzum, 58 on dissolution of priestly marriage, 317 his defence of celibacy, 583-4
Zachary, Pope, on Frankish church, 130 on Saxon church, 164
Zaga Zabo, his account of Coptic church, 93
Zagow, Abbey of, foundation of, 181
Zurich, priests of, defend their women, 340
Zwilling, Gabriel, preaches against monasticism, 421
Zwingli demands priestly marriage, 421
* * * * *
_WORKS BY THE SAME AUTHOR_
STUDIES IN CHURCH HISTORY.
The Rise of the Temporal Power—Benefit of Clergy—Excommunication—The Early Church and Slavery.
Second edition, revised. In one large royal 12mo. volume of 603 pages. Cloth, $2.50. Just issued.
No part of this learned and authoritative work has escaped revision. The new matter strengthens, illustrates more copiously, and enlivens with anecdote the original argument, and, by adducing modern instances, brings the work up to date.—N. Y. _Nation_, May 24, 1883.
The author is preëminently a scholar; he takes up every topic allied with the leading theme and traces it out to the minutest detail with a wealth of knowledge and impartiality of treatment that compel admiration. The amount of information compressed into the book is extraordinary, and the profuse citation of authorities and references makes the work particularly valuable to the student who desires an exhaustive review from original sources. In no other single volume is the development of the primitive church traced with so much clearness and with so definite a perception of complex or conflicting forces.—_Boston Traveller_, May 3, 1883.
Mr. Lea is _facile princeps_ among American scholars in the history of the Middle Ages, and, indeed, we know of no European writer who has shown such research, accuracy, and grasp in investigating important and out-of-the-way topics connected with the history of Europe in the Middle Ages.—N. Y. _Times_, April 30, 1883.
It is some years since we read the first edition of this work by Mr. Lea, and the impression made by it on us at the time is confirmed by reperusal of it in this enlarged and improved form, namely, that it is a book of great research and accuracy, full of varied information on very interesting phases of church life and history. It discusses each subject with a rare fulness of dates and instances, and a curious conscientiousness of verification and citation of authorities.—_Edinburgh Scotsman_, June 2, 1883.
SUPERSTITION AND FORCE.
Essays on The Wager of Law, The Wager of Battle, The Ordeal, and Torture.
Third revised and enlarged edition. In one handsome royal 12mo. volume of 552 pages. Cloth $2.50.
This valuable work is in reality a history of civilization as interpreted by the progress of jurisprudence. In “Superstition and Force” we have a philosophic survey of the long period intervening between primitive barbarity and civilized enlightenment. There is not a chapter in the work that should not be most carefully studied; and, however well versed the reader may be in the science of jurisprudence, he will find much in Mr. Lea’s volume of which he was previously ignorant. The book is a valuable addition to the literature of social science.—_Westminster Review_, Jan. 1880.
This is a book of extraordinary research. Mr. Lea has entered into his subject _con amore_, and a more striking record of the cruel superstitions of our Middle Ages could not possibly have been compiled. As a work of curious enquiry into certain outlying points of obsolete law, “Superstition and Force” is one of the most remarkable works we have met with.—_London Athenæum_, November 3, 1866.
The appearance of a third edition of Mr. Henry C. Lea’s “Superstition and Force” is a sign that our highest scholarship is not without honor in its native country.—N. Y. _Nation_, August 1, 1878.
Mr. Lea’s curious historical monographs, of which one of the most important is here reproduced in an enlarged form, have given him an unique position among English and American scholars. He is distinguished for his recondite and affluent learning, his power of exhaustive historical analysis, the breadth and accuracy of his researches among the rarer sources of knowledge, the gravity and temperance of his statements, combined with singular earnestness of conviction, and his warm attachment to the cause of freedom and intellectual progress.—N. Y. _Tribune_, August 9, 1878.
_HENRY C. LEA’S SON & CO., PHILADELPHIA._
IMPORTANT RELIGIOUS BOOKS.
Rev. James Freeman Clarke.
Ten Great Religions. 8vo., $3.00.
Ten Great Religions. Part II. Comparison of all Religions. 8vo., $3.00.
Common Sense in Religion. 12mo., $2.00.
Prof. J. Lewis Diman.
The Theistic Argument as Affected by Recent Theories. Crown 8vo. gilt top, $2.00.
Orations and Essays, with selected Parish Sermons. With Memorial Address by Prof. J. O. MURRAY and Portrait. 8vo. gilt top, $2.50.
Rev. Washington Gladden.
The Lord’s Prayer. Seven Essays on the Meaning and Spirit of this universal Prayer. 16mo. gilt top, $1.00.
Rev. Samuel Johnson.
Oriental Religions, and their Relation to Universal Religion. I. India, 8vo., $5.00. II. China, 8vo., $5.00. III. Persia, 8vo. (_In Press._)
Lectures, Essays, and Sermons. With a Portrait and Memoir by Rev. SAMUEL LONGFELLOW. Crown 8vo. gilt top, $1.75.
Rev. Elisha Mulford.
The Republic of God. An Institute of Theology. 8vo., $2.00.
Rev. T. T. Munger.
On the Threshold. Familiar Lectures to Young People. 16mo. gilt top, $1.00.
The Freedom of Faith. A volume of Sermons. 16mo. gilt top, $1.50.
J. A. W. Neander.
General History of the Christian Religion and Church. Translated from the German by Rev. JOSEPH TORREY. With an Index volume. The set, six volumes, $20.00. The Index volume separate, $3.00.
Edward Robinson, D.D., LL.D.
Harmony of the Four Gospels, in Greek. 8vo., $1.50.
The Same, in English. 12mo., 75 cents.
Biblical Researches in Palestine. With Maps. In three volumes, 8vo., $10.00.
Physical Geography of the Holy Land. Supplement to “Biblical Researches in Palestine.” 8vo., $3.50.
Gesenius. A Hebrew and English Lexicon of the Old Testament, including the Biblical Chaldee. 8vo. half Russia, $6.00.
English-Hebrew Lexicon: Being a complete Verbal Index to Gesenius’ Hebrew Lexicon, as translated by Prof. EDWARD ROBINSON. By JOSEPH LEWIS POTTER, A.M. 8vo., $2.00.
_For sale by all booksellers. Sent, post-paid, on receipt of price by the Publishers_, HOUGHTON, MIFFLIN & CO., BOSTON, MASS.
FOOTNOTES:
[1] Amos ii. 7.—Deut. xxiii. 18.—Micah i. 7.—Herod. I. 199.—Cf. Kuenen, Religion of Israel, I. 92-3, 368.—Rawlinson’s Essay X. on Herod. I.—Luciani de Syria Dea vi.
[2] When the Church assumed that marriage was incompatible with the ministry of the altar, it was somewhat puzzled to reconcile the hereditary character of the high priesthood with the morning and evening sacrifice required of the high priest (Exod. XXX. 7-8). For ingenious special pleading to explain this away, see St. Augustin, Quæstt. in Pentateuch. III. lxxxii. and Retractt. II. lv. 2.
[3] Num. VI. 2-21.—Judges XIII-XVI.—I. Sam. I. 11.—Lament. IV. 7-8.—Amos II. 11-12.—I. Macc. III. 49.—Mishna, Tract. Nazir.
[4] Yasht-Kordah 10.—Bahram Yasht 46.—Sad-der, Porta C.—Philost. de Vit. Sophistt. I. 10.
[5] Justin. Historiar. X. ii.
[6] Kapila’s Aphorisms I. 1 (Ballantyne’s Translation).—Sankhya Karika XLV., LXVI., LXVIII. (Colebrook & Wilson’s Translation).—For the intercourse between India and the West, see A. Weber, “Die Verbindungen Indiens,” etc., in “Indische Skizzen.”
[7] Surangama Sutra (Beal’s Catena, pp. 348-9).—Davids and Oldenberg’s Vinaya Texts, Part I. p. 4.—Hodgson’s Essays on the Languages, etc., of Nepal and Tibet, pp. 63, 68-70.—Hardy’s Eastern Monachism, pp. 50 sqq.
[8] Manava Dharma Sastra IV. 257; VI. 1-81. Yet the Sutta Nipata, a Buddhist scripture of unquestioned antiquity, states that of old the Brahmans practised celibacy up to the forty-eighth year. (Sir M. C. Swamy’s Translation, p. 81.) Cf. Strabon. Lib. XV., and Clement. Alexand. Stromat. Lib. III.
[9] See Bisse’s edition of Palladius de Gentibus Indiæ.—Diog. Laert. Proœm.—Philost. de Vit. Apollon. Tyan.—Porphyr. de Abstinent. IV. 17.
[10] A. Weber, Hist. Ind. Lit., pp. 163, 237-9.—Wilson’s Vishnu Purana, I. 164.—Garrett’s Class. Dict. India, p. 753.
[11] Rig Veda, VIII. VIII. 48 (Langlois’ Translation).—Muir’s Sanskrit Texts, IV. 160 sqq.—Harivansa Lect. XXXII.—Hitopadesa (Lancereau’s Translation, pp. 178-9, and note to p. 160). The same follies were common to Buddhism. See Fah-Hian (Beal’s Buddhist Pilgrims, pp. 101-2).—Eitel’s Handbook of Chinese Buddhism, pp. 33, 76.—Rogers’s Buddaghosha’s Parables, p. 59.—How nearly Christian extravagance reached these altitudes may be seen by reference to the Umbilicani or Quietist monks of Mt. Athos, in the fourteenth century, who became suffused with divine light after prolonged contemplation of their navels (Basnage, in Canisii Thes. Monument. Eccles. IV. 366, sqq.—Dupin, Bibl. des Auteurs Eccles. XI. 96.—Beal’s Catena, p. 151).
[12] A very good exposition of the Pharisaic revolution will be found in Cohen, Les Pharisiens, 2 vols. 8vo., Paris, 1877.
[13] Josephi Vit. 2.—Ejusd. Antiq. XV. x. 5; XVII. xiii. 3; XVIII. i. 5.—Ejusd. Bell. Jud. II. viii. 2, 3, 4, 5, 7, 12.—Euseb. H. E. II. 23, ex Hegesippo.—Hippol. Refut. Omn. Hæres. IX. xiii.-xxii.—Philastr. Lib. de Hæres. ix.—Matt. xix. 12.—Porphyr. de Abstinent. IV. 11-13.—Philo probably obtained from the Essenes the ideal which he embodied in his account of the supposititious Therapeutæ (Philon. Lib. de Vit. Contempl. pp. 690-1, Ed. 1613).
[14] Matt. xxxiii. 3.—Luc. xi. 46.—Matt. xi. 4-10.
[15] Acts ii. 44-6.—James ii. 10.—Matt. v. 17-19; xxiii. 15.—Cf. Galat. ii. 7.
[16] Irenæi contra Hæres. I. xxvi. 2.—Hippol. Refut. Omn. Hæres. VII. xxii.—Tertullii Præscript. xlvii.—Euseb. H. E. III. xxvii.—Epiphan. Panar. Hæres. XXX.—Hieron. Comment. in Matt. II. xii. 2.—It is possible that “them which say they are Jews and are not,” condemned in Rev. ii. 9; iii. 9, were Ebionites. The Talmud represents the Jewish doctors, after the destruction of Jerusalem, as consorting familiarly and disputing with the Ebionite Christians (Cohen, II. 238-9).
[17] Hieron. adv. Jovin. I. 34.
[18] Gratiani Decret. P. I. Dist. XXXI. c. xi.
[19] Gratiani Comment. in Can. 13. Dist. LVI. See also Comment. in Dist. XXXI.
[20] Summa II. ii. Quæst. 186 Art. 4 § 3.
[21] Gemma Eccles. II. vi.
[22] Casar solien todos los clérigos antiguamiente en el comienzo de la nuestra ley, segunt lo facien en la ley vieja de los judios: mas despues deso los clérigos de occidente, que obedecieron siempre á la eglesia de Roma, accordaron de vevir en castidat.—Las Siete Partidas I. vi. 39.
[23] Dial. Sophiæ et Naturæ Act. 4.
[24] Non erravit ecclesia primitiva quæ sacerdotibus permisit uxores.—Ænei Sylvii Epist. CXXX. (_ap._ Zaccaria, Storia Polemica del Celibato Sacro, Roma, 1775, p. 354).
[25] Boussard’s tract “De continentia Sacerdotum sub hac quæstione nova. Utrum papa possit cum sacerdote dispensare ut nubat,” was several times reprinted. The edition before me is that of Nürnberg, 1510.
[26] Le Plat, Concil. Trident. Monument. VI. 337.
[27] Zaccaria, op. cit. p. 65. It is curious to observe how, in his anxiety to explain the neglect of the church for these assumed Apostolic commands, Zaccaria proceeds to show that the orders of the Apostles were never received as absolutely binding, as for instance in regard to the prohibition of eating blood and animals dead through strangulation (Ib. p. 116).
[28] Taillard, Le Célibat des Prêtres, Gnesen, 1842.
[29] 1. Cor. vii. 8-9, 38.—1. Tim. ii. 14-15.
[30] 1. Tim. iv. 3.
[31] Quid enim enumeremus infinitam multitudinem eorum qui ab incontinenti intemperataque vita abducti sunt quum hæc ipsa didicissent?—Just. Mart. Apol. II.
[32] “Si glorietur, perditur: et si videri velit plus Episcopo, corruptus est.”—Ad Polycarp. cap. v. (Cureton’s Corpus Ignat. p. 10.) This is the received Latin text, but the weight of authority seems to incline rather to the reading πλήν τοῦ ἐπισκόπου than πλέον (Cureton, p. 228—Petermann’s Ignatius, 274-5). The difference, however, is of little moment to our present purpose.
[33] Just. Mart. Apol. II.—Athenagor. pro Christianis Legat.—M. Minuc. Felicis Octavius.—Origenis Comment. in Matt. XIV. 24-5.
[34] So widely spread had these doctrines become by the end of the second century that Clement of Alexandria devotes the third book of his Stromata to their discussion and refutation. It is not worth while to examine their peculiarities minutely here. The curious reader can find all that he is likely to want concerning them in Irenæus, Hippolytus, Clement, Epiphanius, and Philastrius, without plunging further into the vast sea of controversial patristic theology.
[35] Apocalyps. II. 6, 14, 15, 20.—Irenæi contr. Hæres. I. xxvi.—Hippolyti Ref. omn. Hæres. IV. xxiv.—Clem. Alex. Stromat. Lib. III.—Epiphan. Hæres. XXV.—The injustice thus inflicted on the memory of the worthy Nicholas is recognized by the Apostolical Constitutions (Lib. IV. c. viii.). In 1679, E. P. Rothius published a dissertation (_De Nicholaitis_), in which a vast mass of curious learning is brought to the vindication of the apostolic deacon.
[36] Rufin. Hist. Eccles.—Euseb. IV. 23.
[37] Hieron. adv. Jovin. Lib. I. c. 42.
[38] Compare Beal’s “Romantic Legend of Sakhya Buddha from the Chinese Sanscrit,” pp. 33 sqq., with the Protevangelion, the Gospel of the Infancy, the Gospel of Nicodemus, etc.
Somewhat similar to the Buddhist legend is the assertion of the Jainas that their great Tirthankara, Mahavira, selected the womb of Brahamani Devanandi, wife of Rishabha Datta, as his place of birth; but Sakra, indignant that he should be born in the Brahman caste, caused him to be transferred to Trisala, wife of the Kshatriya Siddhartha (Kalpa Sutra, Bk. I. ch. i. Stevenson’s Translation, pp. 24, 38). Concerning the comparative priority of Jainism and Buddhism, see Thomas’s “Jainism, or the early Faith of Asoka,” London, 1877.
In this connection, it is perhaps worth while to note the Mazdean belief in Saoshyans, the future Messiah, who, as in Judaism, is to overcome the evil powers at the end of the world, and preside over the resurrection of mankind, and who is to be born of a virgin, Eredhat Fedri. (Vendidad, Fargard XIX. 18; Bundehesh XXX. XXXII. 8, 9; Haug’s Essays, Ed. 1878, pp. 313-14). The mode of his conception as related in the Bundehesh, may be compared with the less decent speculations of Sanchez as to that of Christ.
[39] Beal’s Buddhist Tripitaka, pp. 114-5.
[40] Marini, Missioni di Tumkino, Roma, 1663, pp. 125, 481, 490 sq.
[41] “Quare vel ut natus est unusquisque nostrum manet, vel nuptiis copulatus unicis, secundæ enim decorum quoddam adulterium sunt.” Athenag. pro Christ. Legat.—“Unius matrimonii vinculo libenter inhæremus, cupiditate procreandi aut unam scimus aut nullam.” M. Minuc. Felicis Octavius.—“Ut ii qui lege humana bis conjugium ineunt peccatores sunt apud præceptorem nostrum.” Justin. Mart. Apol. II.—I. Cor. vii. 39.
[42] Concil Neocæs. ann. 314 c. 7.—Concil. Laodicens. ann. 352 c. 1.—Gelasii PP. I. Epist. IX. Rubr. ad cap. xxii.—Cf. Hieron. Epist. XLVIII. apologeticus, c. 18.—Ejusd. Comment. in Jeremiam Prolog. Even in modern times the priest who pronounces a benediction on a second marriage commits an offence subjecting him to punishment (Rodriguez, Nuova Somma de’Casi di Coscienza, Venez. 1609. P. I. cap. ccxl. No. 4).
[43] Val. Max. II. i. 3.—Plut. Quæstt. Roman. 105.—Diod. Sicul. XII. 14.—Tertull. Lib. di Exhort. Castit. xiii.—Auli Gellii X. 15.
[44] Tertull. Lib. di Exhort. Castit. VII.; de Monogam. xi.—Concil. Eliberit. xxxviii.
[45] Hippol. Ref. omn. Hæres. IX. vii.—Hieron. Epist. LXIX. ad Oceanum.—Constit. Apostol. VI. 17.—Canon. Apostol. xvii., xviii., xix.
[46] I. Tim. iii. 2, 11, 12—Tit. i. 6.—Origenis Comment. in Matt. XIV. 23. The polygamy practised by the Jews from the earliest times was continued after the Dispersion. Justin Martyr taxes them with it (Dial. cum Tryphone), and Theodosius, in 393, endeavored to suppress it (Const. 7 Cod. Lib. II. Tit. ix.) by a law, the preservation of which by Justinian, after an interval of nearly a century and a half, shows that the necessity for the prohibition still existed. Even among some of the eastern Christians the precept was required, if we may believe some ancient Arabic canons, which pass under the name of the Council of Nicæa (Decret. ex quatuor Regum libris can. v. _ap._ Harduin. Concil. I. 511).
This explanation of St. Paul’s injunction is adopted by Theophylact (Comment. in I. Epist. ad Timoth.) and is expressed in the paraphrase “non plures habens uxores quam unam,” in a tract of uncertain date, attributed to St. Cyprian or St. Augustin (De XII. Abusionibus Seculæ cap. x. _ap._ Opp. S. Cypriani Mantissa p. 49, Oxon. 1682). This is likewise the view put forward by the Church of Geneva in 1563, when replying to certain queries of the Huguenot Synod of Lyons (Cap. XXI. Art. x. _ap._ Quick, Synodicon in Gall. Reform. I. 49). Origen’s discussion of the matter (Comment. in Matt. XIV. 23-4) shows how doubtful he considered it.
In fact, if the text is to be construed with rigorous exactness, it would exclude all unmarried men from the episcopate, and this seems to be the sense attributed to it in the Apostolic Constitutions (Lib. II. c. ii.), which in commenting upon it do not appear to contemplate bachelors as eligible.
[47] Levit. XXI. 13-14.—Innocent. PP. I. Epist. xxii. c. 1.—Epistt. Leon. PP. I. _ap._ Harduin. Concil. I. 1767, 1772, etc.
[48] Concil. Eliberit. can. 65.—Concil. Neocæsarens. c. 8.—Concil. Tarraconens. ann. 516. can. 9.—Boussardus de Continent. Sacerdot. Prop. 6., Nuremb., 1510.
[49] Constit. Apostol. VI. 17.—Canon. Apostol. VI. XVII. XVIII. XIX. XXVII.
[50] Porphyr. de Abstinent. II. 46, 61; IV. 20.—Cf. Jambl. de Mysteriis IV. xi.—Damasceni Vit. Isidori 311.
[51] For the influence of Buddhism on Neo-platonism, Gnosticism, and Manichæism, see A. Weber, Indische Skizzen, pp. 63, 91.
[52] Origenis Comment. in Matt. XV. 1-3.—Just. Martyr. Apolog. II.—Epiphan. Hæres. LVII.—Can. Apostol. XXII. XXIII. XXIV.—Concil. Nicæn. c. i.—Concil. Arelatens. II. ann. 452 c. vii., etc.—Sexti Philos. Sent. IX.—At the close of the twelfth century the canons were relaxed by Clement III. in favor of a priest of Ravenna whose ascetic ardor had led him to follow the example of Origen, and who was permitted to retain all the functions of the priesthood except the ministry of the altar (Can. iv. Extra, I. XX.). In the sixteenth century, Ambrosio Morales, a Dominican, took the same effectual means to extinguish his passions and was in consequence expelled from the Order, as required by the canons. He betook himself to literature and died in 1590, at the age of sixty, while professor of eloquence in the University of Alcalà (De Thou, Lib. XCIX.). The practice has perpetuated itself to the nineteenth century in a Russian sect, which Catherine II. and her successors endeavored in vain to repress. In 1818 Alexander II. ordered the enthusiasts banished to Siberia, but the ardor with which they courted martyrdom rendered their zeal dangerously contagious and they were left in obscurity, in the hope of their dying out (Pluquet, Dict. des Hérésies, s. v. _Mutilés de Russie_). This proved equally ineffectual, for a recent traveller describes them under the name of _Skopsis_ as a large tribe inhabiting the Caucasus, where they flourish in spite of the most energetic measures of repression on the part of the government—imprisonment, banishment to Siberia, conscription, and even the death penalty being powerless to overcome their fanaticism (Brugsch, Reise der Preussischen Gesandschaft nach Persien, 1860-1, _ap._ London Reader, Jan. 3, 1863). Buffon (Hist. Nat. de l’Homme, _ap._ Helsen, Abus du Célibat des Prêtres, p. 52) states that he was acquainted with a priest who had adopted this mode as the only one to preserve his virtue.
[53] Cyprian, de Habit. Virgin.—That such laxity was indulged in by professed virgins is the more remarkable since promiscuous bathing was forbidden to every one by the Apostolic Constitutions, Lib. I. c. x.
[54] Tertull. de Virgin. veland. c. XV.
[55] Cyprian. Epist. IV. ad Pomponium.
[56] Concil. Antioch (Harduin. Concil. I. 198). Cf. Lactant. Divin. Instit. VI. XIX.—Extravagances of this kind long continued to be a favorite exercise with enthusiasts. In 450 the anchorites of Palestine are described as herding together without distinction of sex, and with no garments but a breech-clout; while others who frequented the cities exhibited their self-control by appearing in the public baths with women. (Niceph. Callist. H. E. XIV. 50.)
[57] Constit. Apost. II. i. ii.—Statut. Eccles. Antiq. CIV.
[58] Chronique de Tabari, Ed. Rothenberg, II. 90. It is curious to observe that Persian tradition represented Manes as a Chinese magician and an excellent painter, who constructed figures that were able to move, and thus deceived the people. After gaining the confidence of the monarch, he was vanquished in controversy with the chief Mobed, and was flayed alive. (Mohl’s Livre des Rois, V. 379-81.)
[59] Lib. XVI. Cod. Theod. Tit. v. l. 7.—Cf. Concil. Quinisext, c. 95.
Scythianus, the precursor of Manes, is said by Epiphanius (Hæres. LXVI.) to have visited India and to have brought from there certain books of magic, which must have been Buddhist, as Buddhism was at that period supreme in the Peninsula. His disciple, Terbinthus, the link between him and Manes, assumed the name of the Buddha.
[60] Ephræmi Syri Hymn. II. (Wegnern, Manichæorum Indulgentias, Lipsiæ 1827)—Thomas’s Sassanian Inscriptions, p. 65.—Mainyo-i-khard, West’s Ed. XVI. 16 sq. and West’s note p. 160; Glossary p. 64.—Haug’s Essays, Bombay Ed. p. 239.—Shayast la-Shayast XVII. 2 (West’s Pahlavi Texts, Pt. I. p. 382 and West’s note p. 284).—Dadistan-i Dinik, ch. XXVIII.-XXX. (Pahlavi Texts, II. 58 sqq.)—Plutarch de Isid. et Osirid. 46.—Justin. Mart. Apolog. II.
[61] Leon. PP. I. Serm. XLII. cap. 5.
[62] Epiphan. Hæres. LXVI.—The same doctrine was held by the Patricians, according to Philastrius, P. III. No. 15.
[63] Hieron. adv. Jovin. I. 3.—Ejusd. Epist. ad Eustoch. c. 5.
[64] Augustin. Epist. LXXIV. ad Deuterium—Ejusd. contra Faustum Lib. XXX. c. iv.
[65] Cyprian. de Habit. Virgin.—Synod. II. S. Patric. c. 18.
[66] Hieron. adv. Jovin. I. 2, 26.—Ejusd. Epistt. L. LI. LII.
[67] Augustin. de Concupisc. et de Nuptiis.—Ejusd. de Bono Conjugali c. x.—Panzini (Confessione di un Prigioniero, p. 193) is not far wrong in suggesting that the learned doctors who thus decry marriage are guilty of the blasphemy of addressing their creator—“Vergognatevi di avere inventato un modo così turpe per darci l’esistenza!”
[68] Sulpic. Sever. Dial. II.
[69] In Mag. Bib. Pat. T. V. P. II. pp. 652, 658.
[70] Gregor. P.P. I. Regist. Lib. XI. Epist. lxiv. Respons. 10; Lib. III. Epist. lxv.
[71] Theodor. Penitent. Lib. I. c. xiv. 1, 2, 3. (Haddon & Stubbs’s Councils, III. 187.)
[72] Epiphan. Exposit. Fid. Cathol.
[73] Constit. Apostol. Lib. IV. c. 14; VI. 11, 14, 26, 27, 28; VIII. 30.
[74] Lactant. Instit. Divin. VI. xvi. xxiii.
[75] The fiftieth canon was omitted by Dionysius Exiguus, but was subsequently admitted by the church, notwithstanding that it proves in the clearest manner the full enjoyment of marriage by all grades of the clergy. The sixth canon (numbered fifth in the full collection) which prohibits the separation of ecclesiastics from their wives, was likewise accepted, although in the eighteenth century Cabassut stigmatizes it as heretical.
[76] Conc. Carthag. IV. c. 1.
[77] Thus Tibullus (Lib. I. El. I.)—
“Vos quoque abesse procul jubeo, discedite ab aris, Queis tulit hesterna gaudia nocte Venus. Casta placent Superis.”
Cf. Juvenal, VI. 534-5.—Ælii Lamprid. Alex. Sever. XXIX.—Porphyr. de Abstinent. II. 50; IV. 6, 7.—Arriani de Epictet. Disertt. Lib. III. c. xxi.—I. Cor. vii. 5.
[78] Diod. Sicul. I. 80.—Hieron. adv. Jovin. II. 13.—Plut. de Isid. et Osirid. 2.—Lucian. de Syria Dea XV.—Sil. Ital. Punicor. III. 21-8.—Cf. Virg. Æneid. VI. 661.—Pausan. VII. XXV. 8. Egyptian customs in this respect may perhaps be traced to the vow of continence made by Isis after the death of her husband-brother, Osiris (Diod. Sicul. I. 27). The Emperor Julian’s neo-platonic explanation of the Syrian asceticism (Orat V.) is not without analogy to some of the rhapsodies of the fathers in the praise of virginity.
[79] Juliani Imp. Orat. V.—Tertull. de Monogam. xvii.; ad Uxorem I. 6; de Exhort. Castit. xiii.—Hieron. adv. Jovin. I. 26.—Pausan. IX. xxvii. 5.—Sueton. Octav. xxxviii.
[80] Concil. Eliberitan, can. 27, 33.—The 29th canon of the first council of Arles held in 314, if genuine, marks the extension of the movement eastward, but as it is contained in but one MS., Mansi supposes it probably to belong to some subsequent and forgotten synod. It is almost identical with Concil. Telensis ann. 386 can. 9; and, whatever be its date, its phraseology evidently indicates that it records the first introduction of the rule in its locality.
[81] Concil. Ancyran. ann. 314 can 9.—Concil. Neocæsar. ann. 314 can 1, 8.
[82] Euseb. Demonstr. Evang. I. ix.
[83] I give the version of Dionysius Exiguus: “Interdixit per omnia magna synodus, non episcopo, non presbytero, non diacono, nec alicui omnino qui in clero est, licere subintroductam habere mulierem; nisi forte matrem, aut sororem, aut amitam, vel eas tantum personas quæ suspiciones effugiunt.”
An Arabic version of the Nicene canons specially limits the prohibition to bishops, and to unmarried priests and deacons.—“Decernimus ut episcopi non habitent cum mulieribus.... Idem decernitur de omni sacerdote cœlibe, idemque de diaconis qui sine uxore sunt.” (Harduin. Concil. I. 463.)—This expresses nearly the discipline of the Greek church.
[84] Concil. Ancyrens. can. 18.
[85] Pudet dicere, proh nefas! triste sed verum est. Unde in ecclesias Agapetarum pestis introiit? unde sine nuptiis aliud nomen uxorum? immo unde novum concubinarum genus? Plus inferam. Unde meretrices univiræ? eadem domo, uno cubiculo sæpe tenentur et lectulo: et suspiciosos nos vocant si aliquid extimemus. Frater sororem virginem deserit, cœlibum spernit virgo germanum, fratrem quærit extraneum: et cum in eodem proposito esse se simulent, quærunt alienorum spiritale solatium, ut domi habeant carnale commercium. (Epist. XXII. ad Eustoch. c. 5.) It should be observed that celibacy had become the rule of the church at the time when Jerome wrote thus.
[86] Accusant nimirum eos qui in ecclesia dilectas appellatas, aliunde introductas ac cohabitantes fœminas habent.—Panar. Hæres. LXIII.
[87] Hieron. Epist. ad Oceanum de Vit. Cleric.
[88] When, during the demoralization of the tenth century, the council of Augsburg made a spasmodic effort to revive the neglected rule of celibacy, it endeavored to include the lower orders of the clergy within its scope. Ratramnus of Corvey also does not fail to point out that such was the incontrovertible meaning of the Nicene canon, which in his time was universally considered to refer to marriage.
[89] Siricii Epist. 2.—Innocent. ad Victricium, ad Exuperium, &c.
[90] Lib. XVI. Cod. Theod. Tit. ii. l. 44.
[91] The learned and orthodox Zaccaria, concludes that the Nicene canon was only intended to forbid the irregular connexions with agapetæ, whence he ingeniously argues that as the Council of Nicæa did not in any way forbid priestly marriage, the origin of the rule of celibacy is to be assigned to the Apostles.—Storia Polemica, p. 90.
[92] Pseudo-Concil. Roman. sub. Silvest. can. xix. (Migne’s Patrol. VIII. 840.)
[93] Socrat. H. E. Lib. I. c. 11.—Sozomen. H. E. Lib. I. c. 22.
[94] Bernald. Altercat. de Incont. Sacerd.
[95] Monumenta Gregoriana (Migne’s Patrol T. CXLVIII. p. 1378).
[96] Verum quidem est, quod ob ministrorum Dei defectum in primitiva ecclesia conjugati admittebantur ad sacerdotium, ut ex canonibus apostolorum et Paphnutii responso liquet, et in Concilio Nicæno.—(Respons. Pii. IV. _ap._ Le Plat, Concil. Trident. Monument. VI. 337.)
[97] Sed præ cæteris omnibus Socrates et Sozomenus ac Theodoretus totius antiquitatis judicio celebrati sunt, qui ab iis temporibus exorsi, in quibus Eusebius scribendi finem fecerat, ad Theodosii junioris tempora opus suum perduxerunt.—H. Valesii Præfat.
[98] Theodoret. Hist. Eccles. Lib. I. c. 7.
So also Rufinus (Hist. Eccles. Lib. X. c 4): “Fuit præterea in illo concilio et Paphnutius homo Dei, episcopus Ægypti partibus, confessor, etc.,” but he makes no allusion to the incident related by Socrates and Sozomen.
[99] Act. Concil. Nicæn. II. xxxii. (Harduin. I. 438).—Hist. Tripart. II. 13.—Chr. Lupi Opp. I. 239 (Venet. 1724).
[100] Epist. ad Dracontium.
[101]
Οὐπω τοσουτον ἐκμεμετρηκας βιον, Ὁσος διηλθε θυσιων ἐμοι χρονος.
Baronius labors hard to break the force of this assertion, but his arguments seem to me successfully controverted by Calixtus. (De Conjug. Cleric. Ed. 1783, pp. 261-74.) The chapter devoted to this question by Zaccaria (Storia Polem. Lib. I. cap. vii.) is an example of desperate special pleading.
[102] Concil. Laodicens. can. xi.
[103] Romans, XVI. 1. The number of women alluded to by St. Paul in this chapter shows how active they were in disseminating the faith. Junia he dignities with the title of Apostle.
[104] Atton. Vercell. Epist. viii.—Epiphanius (Hæres. LXXIX) denies that women had ever been permitted to rise beyond the diaconate, and asserts that their functions in that grade were simply to render to women such offices as decency forbade to men. In the West, the ordination of deaconesses was prohibited by Concil. Arausican. I. ann. 441 can. xxvi.; Concil. Epaonens. ann. 513 can. xxi., and Concil. Aurelianens. II. ann. 538 can. xviii., on account of disorders arising through the fragility of the sex, as was perhaps not unnatural, after the adoption of enforced celibacy. It was probably for the sake of order that St. Paul forbade women from teaching or asking questions in church (I Cor. xiv. 34, 35; I. Tim. ii. 11, 12).
[105] Declaratum est enim hos eosdem nuptias accusare et docere quod nullus in conjugali positus gradu spem habeat apud Deum.... In domibus conjugatorum nec orationes quidem debere celebrari, persuasisse in tantum ut easdem fieri vetent.... Presbyteros vero qui matrimonia contraxerunt sperni debere dicunt, nec sacramenta quæ ab eis conficiuntur, attingi.—Concil. Gangrens. Proœm.
So also Socrates—“Benedictionem presbyteri habentis uxorem, quam lege cum esset laicus duxisset, tanquam scelus declinandum præcepit.”—Hist. Eccles. Lib. II. c. 33.
After the specific condemnation of this latter doctrine by the undoubtedly orthodox council of Gangra, it is somewhat remarkable to see it enunciated and erected into a law of the church by Gregory VII. in his internecine conflict with the married priests. Thus the heresy of one age becomes the received and adopted faith of another.
[106] Concil. Gangrens. c. 4.—Si quis decernit presbyterum conjugatum tanquam occasione nuptiarum quod offerre non debeat, et ab ejus oblatione ideo se abstinet, anathema sit.—I give the Isidorian version adopted by Gratian, Dist. XXVIII. c. 15, and by Burchard, Lib. III. 75. That of Dionysius Exiguus is somewhat different.
Can. 10.—Si quis propter Deum virginitatem professus in conjugio positos per arrogantiam vituperaverit, anathema sit.—Can. 1 and 9 are directed against those who condemn marriage, and teach that it affords no chance of heaven.
[107] Concil. Gangrens. Epilog.
[108] Lib. XVI. Cod. Theod. Tit. ii. l. 20.
[109] So great was the influx of wealth to the church from the pious legacies of the faithful that it became an evil of magnitude to the state, and in 370 a law of Valentinian pronounced null and void all such testamentary provisions made by those under priestly influence (Lib. XVI. Cod. Theod. Tit. ii. l. 20)—a provision repeated in 390 (Ibid. l. 27) with such additional details as show its successful evasion during the interval. Godefroi, in his notes to these laws (T. VI. pp. 48-50, 60-64), has collected much curious matter bearing on the subject.
[110] Synod. Roman. ad Gallos Episc. Respons. c. 3.—The date of this synod is not certain, but the year mentioned in the text is the earliest to which it is assigned. By some authorities it has been attributed to 398, and Hardouin suggests that it may even have been held under Innocent I.
[111] “Certe idololatræ, ut impietates exerceant et dæmonibus immolent, imperant sibi continentiam muliebrem, et ab escis quoque se purgari volunt, et me interrogas si sacerdos Dei vivi spiritualia oblaturus sacrificia purgatus perpetuo debeat esse, an totus in carne carnis curam debeat facere?”
If all the postulates be granted, the reasoning is unanswerable, and as the precedents of the Old Testament have been relied upon in all arguments since the time of Siricius, it may be worth while to refer to the caution of Ahimelech before giving the shew-bread to David (I. Sam. 21) as one of the texts most constantly quoted, and to the residence of Zacharias in the Temple during his term of ministration (Luke I. 23), which was frequently instanced. These are certainly more germane to the matter than the linen breeches provided for Aaron and his sons (Exod. XXVIII. 42-3), by which the Venerable Bede assures us (De Tabernac. Lib. III. c. 9) “significatum esse sacerdotes Novi Testamenti aut virgines esse, aut contracta cum uxoribus fœdera dissolvisse.”
[112] Siricii Epist. I. c. 7.—It would seem from this decretal (cap. 8, 9, 10, 11) that even the rule excluding digami was wholly neglected. Siricius further (cap. 13) urges the admission of monks to holy orders, for the purpose of providing a priesthood vowed to chastity.
[113] Præterea, quod dignum, pudicum et honestum est, suademus ut sacerdotes et levitæ cum uxoribus suis non coeant, quia in ministerio divino quotidianis necessitatibus occupantur.... Qua de re hortor, moneo, rogo, tollatur hoc opprobrium quod potest etiam jure gentilitas accusare.—Concil. Telensis. c. 9.
[114] Quod eo non præterii quia in plerisque abditioribus locis, cum ministerium gererent, vel etiam sacerdotium, filios susceperent, et id tanquam usu veteri defendunt, quando per intervallo dierum sacrificium deferebatur.—Ambros. de Officiis Lib. I. c. 50.
[115] Tertullian has no scruple in asserting—“Et Christum quidum virgo enixa est, semel nuptura post partum.” (De Monog. c. 8). This belief was founded on the words of Matthew (I. 25), “καὶ οὐκ ἐγίνωσκεν αὐτὴν ἔως ὁυ ἔτεκετον ὑιὸν ἀυτῆς τὸν πρωτοτόκον, καὶ ἐκάλεσε τὸ ὄνομα ἀυτοῦ ἰησοῦν.”—“And he knew her not till she had brought forth her first-born son; and he called his name JESUS.” The restrictive “till” and the characterization of Jesus as the first-born of the Virgin (though the latter is omitted in the Sinaitic and Vatican MSS.) are certainly not easily explicable on any other supposition; nor is the difficulty lessened by the various explanations concerning the family of Joseph, by which such expressions as ἡ μήτηρ αὐτοῦ καὶ οἱ ἀδελφοί αὐτοῦ—fratres et mater ejus (Marc. III. xxxi.), or the enumeration of his brothers and sisters in Matt. XIII. 55-6, Mark VI. 3, or the phrase ἰάκωβον τὸν ἀδελφὸν τοῦ κυρίου—Jacobum fratrem Domini (Galat. I. 19)—are taken by commentators in a spiritual sense, or are eluded by transferring to the Greek a Hebrew idiom which confounds brothers with cousins. In the Constitutiones Apostolicæ occurs a passage—“Et ego Jacobus frater quidem Christi secundum carnem, servus autem tanquam Dei”—which seems to place it in an unmistakable light, if it be an extract from some forgotten Gospel, although it may only reflect the opinions of the third century when the collection was written or compiled.
The Bonosiacs were also sometimes called Helvidians.—S. Augustin. de Hæresibus § 84.—Isidor. Hispalens. Etymolog. Lib. VIII. c. v. § 57.
In an age which was accustomed to such arguments as “per mulierem culpa successit, per virginem salus evenit” (Rescript. Episcopp. ad Siricium), it is easy to appreciate the pious horror evoked by such blasphemous heresies.
St. Clement of Alexandria alludes to a belief current in his day that after the Nativity the Virgin had to submit to an inspection _ab obstetrice_ to prove her purity (Stromat. Lib. vii.)—a story which continued to trouble the orthodox until the seventeenth century.
The Buddhists eluded all these troublesome questions by making Queen Maya die seven days after the birth of Sakyamuni, and asserting that this was the case with the mothers of all the Buddhas.—Rgya Tch’er Rol P (Ed. Fou-a aux, p. 100).
[116] Epist. Siric. ap. Batthyani Legg. Eccles. Hungar. T. I. p. 210.
[117] Hieron. de Perpet. Virgin. B. Mariæ adv. Helvidium.
[118] Epist. XX.
[119] Concil. Arelatens. II. can. 17.—Concil. Aurelian. III. can. 31.
[120] Panar. Hæres. 78.—At the time of the Reformation the Bonosiac heresy naturally was revived. In 1523, at the Diet of Nuremberg, the Papal orator accused Osiander “quod prædicasset Beatam Virginem Mariam post Christi partum non mansisse Virginem” (Spalatini Annal. ann. 1523), but Osiander found few followers. At the Colloquy of Poissy, in 1561, the learned Claude d’Espense, doctor of Sorbonne, in arguing that there were many things the authority of which rested solely on tradition, and yet which were admitted as undoubted by all parties, instanced “que la Vierge Marie demoura vierge après l’enfantement, et plusieurs autres semblables par conséquent; ce qui a esté baillé de main en main par nos pères, ores qu’il ne soit escript, n’est pourtant moins certain et approuvé que s’il estoit temoigné par l’Escripture” (Pierre de la Place, Liv. VII.).
[121] Siricii PP. Epist. ii.
[122] Rescript. Episcopp. ad Siricium. (Harduin. Concil. I. 853.)
[123] Hieron. adv. Jovin.—Augustin. de Hæres. No. lxxxii.
[124] Augustin. Retractt. II. xxii. 1.
[125] Lib. XVI. Cod. Theod. Tit. V. l. 53. It is generally assumed from this law that Jovinian lived until 412. An expression of St. Jerome, however, (adv. Vigilant. cap. i.) would seem to show that he was already dead in 406, and critics have suggested either that there is an error in the date of the law or that another heresiarch is referred to.
[126] Exortus est subito Vigilantius, seu verius Dormitantius, qui immundo spiritu pugnat contra Christi spiritum, et martyrum neget sepulchra veneranda, dammandas dicat esse vigilias; nunquam nisi in Pascha alleluia cantandum; continentiam hæresim; pudicitiam libidinis seminarium. Et quomodo Euphorbus in Pythagora renatus esse perhibetur, sic in isto Joviniani mens prava surrexit; ut et in illo et in hoc diaboli respondere cogamur insidiis.—Hieron. adv. Vigilant. c. 1.
[127] Proh nefas! episcopos sui sceleris dicitur habere consortes: si tamen episcopi nominandi sunt qui non ordinant diaconos nisi prius uxores duxerint; nulli cœlibi credentes pudicitiam, immo ostendentes quam sancte vivant qui male de omnibus suspicantur; et nisi prægnantes uxores viderint clericorum, infantesque de ulnis matrum vagientes, Christi sacramenta non tribuant.... Hoc docuit Dormitantius, libidini fræna permittens, et naturalem carnis ardorem, qui in adolescentia plerumque fervescit, suis hortatibus duplicans, immo extinguens coitu fœminarum, ut nihil sit quo distemus a porcis, etc.—Hieron. adv. Vigilant. c. 2.
[128] Præterea quod dignum, pudicum et honestum est, tenere ecclesia omnino debet, ut sacerdotes et levitæ cum uxoribus non misceantur.... Maxime ut vetus regula hoc habet ut quisquis corruptus baptizatus clericus esse voluisset, spondeat uxorem omnino non ducere.—Innocent. PP. I. Epist. ii. c. 9, 10.
[129] Ut incontinentes in officiis talibus positi, omni ecclesiastico honore priventur, nec admittantur ad tale ministerium, quod sola continentia oportet impleri.—As for those who could be proved to have seen the epistle of Siricius—“illi sunt modis omnibus submovendi.”—Innocent. PP. I. Epist. iii. c. 1.
[130] The observance of the rule and its effects are well illustrated in the story of Urbicus, Bishop of Clermont, and his unhappy wife, as naïvely related by Gregory of Tours (Hist. Franc. L. I. c. 44).
[131] Ab universis episcopis dictum est: Omnibus placet, ut episcopi, presbyteri et diaconi, vel qui sacramenta contrectant, pudicitiæ custodes etiam ab uxoribus se abstineant.—Concil. Carthag. II. can. 2 (Cod. Eccles. African. can. 3).
[132] Aurelius episcopus dixit: Addimus fratres carissimi præterea, cum de quorundam clericorum, quamvis lectorum, erga uxores proprias incontinentia referretur, placuit, quod et in diversis conciliis firmatum est, ut subdiaconi, qui sacra mysteria contrectant, et diaconi et presbyteri, sed et episcopi, secundum priora statuta etiam ab uxoribus se contineant, ut tanquam non habentes videantur esse: quod nisi fecerint, ab ecclesiastico removeantur officio. Ceteros autem clericos ad hoc non cogi, nisi maturiori ætate. Ab universo concilio dictum est: Quæ vestra sanctitas est juste moderata, et sancta et Deo placita sunt, confirmamus.—Concil. Carthag. V. c. 3 (Cod. Eccles. Afric. c. 25).
The councils thus alluded to are probably the Roman Synods under Damasus and Siricius.
I give the version most favored by modern critics, but it should be observed that there is doubt concerning several important points. In the older collections of councils (_e. g._ Surius, Ed. 1567, T. I. p. 519-20) the canon indicates no compulsion for the orders beneath the diaconate, commencing “Placuit episcopos et presbyteros et diaconos” and ending “Cæteros autem clericos ad hoc non cogi sed secundum uniuscujusque ecclesiæ consuetudinem observari debere,” and this has probability in its favor, since the subdiaconate was not included in the restriction for nearly two centuries after this period, and the lower grades were never subjected to the rule.
The expression “secundum priora statuta” is probably the emendation of a copyist puzzled by the obscurity of “secundum propria statuta,” which latter is the reading given by Dionysius Exiguus. That it is the correct one is rendered almost certain by the Greek version, which is κατα τους ἰδιους ὁρους (Calixt. Conjug. Cleric, p. 350) which would seem to leave the matter very much to the preëxisting customs of the individual churches.
[133] De Adulterin. Conjug. Lib. II. c. 20.
[134] Faustinus episcopus ecclesiæ Potentinæ, provinciæ Piceni, legatus Romanæ ecclesiæ, dixit: Placet ut episcopus, presbyter et diaconus vel qui sacramenta contrectant pudicitiæ custodes ab uxoribus se abstineant. Ab universis episcopis dictum est: Placet ut in omnibus pudicitia custodiatur qui altari inserviunt (Cod. Eccles. African. can. iv.).
That strict rules were not enforced in the African church is rendered probable by another circumstance. Faustus the Manichæan, in defending the tenets of his sect on the subject of marriage and celibacy, enters into an elaborate comparison of their doctrines and practices with those of the Catholic church. In ridiculing the idea that the Manichæans prohibited marriage to their followers, he could not have omitted the argument and contrast derivable from prohibition of marriage by the Catholics, had such prohibition been enforced. His omission to do this is therefore a negative proof of great weight.—See Augustin. contra Faust. Manich. Lib. XXX. c. iv.
[135] Concil. Toletan. I. ann. 400 can. 1, 3, 4, 6, 7, 18, 19.
[136] Hi autem qui contra interdictum sunt ordinati, vel in ministerio filios genuerunt, ne ad majores gradus ordinum permittantur synodi decrevit auctoritas.—Concil. Taurinens. c. 8.
[137] Concil. Arausic. I. c. 22, 23, 24.
[138] Leon. PP. I. Epist. clxvii. Inquis. iii.
[139] Catalogus Sanctt. Hibern. (Haddan & Stubbs II. 292)—Confessio S. Patricii (Ibid. 308, 310)—Epist. S. Patricii (Ibid. 317)—Synod. S. Patricii can. 6 (Ibid. 329). The date of all these documents is of course somewhat conjectural, but I have assumed it safe to follow the conclusions of the painstaking and lamented Mr. Haddan.
[140] Innocent. PP. I. Epist. v.
[141] Greg. Turon. Hist. Franc. Lib. II. c. 1.
[142] Greg. Turon. de Glor. Confess. c. 76.
[143] Sunt alii (de mei ordinis hominibus loquor) qui ideo presbyteratum et diaconatum ambiunt ut mulieres licentius videant.—Epist. XXII. ad Eustoch. cap. 28.
[144] Epist. CXXV. ad Rusticum, cap. 6.
[145] Lib. XVI. Cod. Theod. Tit. ii. l. 44.
[146] Concil. Andegav. ann. 453 c. 4.
[147] Nullus diaconus vel presbyter vel episcopus ad cellarii secretum intromittat puellam vel ingenuam vel ancillam.—Concil. Arelatens. II. c. 4.
[148] Epist. Lupi et Euphronii. (Harduin. II. 792.)
[149] Whatever interest there might be in exhibiting in detail the varying legislation and the expedients of lenity or severity by turns adopted, would scarcely repay the space which it would occupy or relieve the monotony of retracing the circle in which the unfortunate fathers of the church perpetually moved. I therefore content myself with simply indicating such canons of the period as bear upon the subject, for the benefit of any student who may desire to examine the matter more minutely.
Concil. Turon. I. (ann. 460) c. 2, 3.—Agathens. (506) c. 9.—Aurelianens. I. (511) c. 13.—Tarraconens. (516) c. 1.—Gerundens. (517) c. 6, 7.—Epaonens. (517) c. 2, 32.—Ilerdens. (523) c. 2, 5, 15.—Toletan. II. (531) c. 1, 3.—Aurelianens. II. (533) c. 8.—Arvernens. I. (535) c. 13, 16.—Aurelianens. III. (538) c. 2, 4, 7.—Aurelianens. IV. (541) c. 17.—Aurelianens. V. (549) c. 3, 4.—Bracarens. I. (563) c. 15.—Turonens. II. (567) c. 10, 12, 13, 15, 19, 20.—Bracarens. II. (572) c. 8, 32, 39.—Autissiodor. (578) c. 21.—Matiscon. I. (581) c. 1, 2, 3, 11.—Lugdunens. III. (583) c. 1.—Toletan. III. (589) c. 5.—Hispalens. I. (590) c. 3.—Cæsaraugustan. (592) c. 1.—Toletan. (597) c. 1.—Oscensis. (598) c. 2.—Egarens. (614) c. unic.—Concil. loc. incert. (a. 615) c. 8, 12.—Toletan. IV. (633) c. 42, 44, 52, 55.—Cabilonens (649) c. 3.—Toletan. VIII. (653) c. 4, 5, 6, 7.—Toletan. IX. (655) c. 10.—Toletan. XI. (675) c. 5.—Bracarens. III. (675) c. 4.—Augustodunens. (690) c. 10.
[150] Salvian. De Gubernat. Dei Lib. VI. VII.
[151] Expurgat. Sixti Papæ c. VI. (Harduin. Concil. II. 1742).—Pagi (ann. 433, No. 19) casts doubt on the authenticity of the proceedings of this trial, and modern criticism (see “Janus” The Pope and the Council, p. 124) assumes it to be a fabrication of the early part of the sixth century, made for the purpose of vindicating the immunity of the clergy from secular law.
[152] Concil. Chalcedon. Act. X. (Harduin. II. 518-9).
[153] The strictness with which the Nicene canon was enforced is shown by an epistle of St. Basil, about the middle of the fourth century, in which he sternly reproves a priest named Paregorius, who at the age of 70 had thought himself sufficiently protected against scandal to allow to his infirmities the comfort of a housekeeper. The unlucky female is ordered to be forthwith immured in a convent, and, until this is accomplished, Paregorius is forbidden to perform his priestly functions. The whole is based on the authority of the council of Nicæa.—“Nec primo nec soli (tibi Paregori) sancivimus, non debere mulierculas cohabitare viris. Lege canonem, a sanctis patribus nostris in Nicæna synodo constitutum: qui manifeste interdixit, ne quis mulierculam subintroductam habeat. Cœlibatus autem honestatem suam in eo habet, si quis a nexu mulieris secesserit.”
[154] Hæres. LIX. c. 4.
[155] Quid faciunt Orientis ecclesiæ? Quid Ægypti et sedis Apostolicæ, quæ aut virgines clericos accipiunt, aut continentes: aut si uxores habuerint, mariti esse desistunt.—Lib. adv. Vigilant. c. 2.
[156] Sextum, quod dimissa uxore sua cum ea rursus congressus est, filiosque ex ea procreasset.—Palladii Dial. de Vit. S. Joan. Chrysost. cap. xiii.
[157] Synesii Epist. cv.
[158] Ejusd. Epist. cviii.
[159] Et si placet, quanto etiam melior sit addam, quanto cœlum terra, quanto hominibus angeli.—Lib. de Virgin. c. x.
[160] Socrat. H. E. Lib. V. c. 21.
[161] S. Isidor. Pelusiot. Epist. Lib. III. No. 75.
[162] Constit. 45 Cod. I. 3. This law is preserved by Photius (Nomoc. Tit. IX. c. 29), but Balsamon (Schol. ad. loc.) says that it is omitted in the Basilica.
[163] “Nihil enim sic in sacris ordinationibus diligimus quam cum castitate viventes, aut cum uxoribus non cohabitantes, aut unius uxoris virum, qui vel fuerit vel sit, et ipsam castitatem eligentem.” The lector could, by forfeiting his prospects of promotion, marry a second time, if pressed by overmastering necessity, but he was not allowed, under any excuse, to take a third wife.—Novell. VI. c. 5.—These provisions were repeated the following year in Novell. XXII. c. 42.
[164] Novell. CXXIII. c. 12.
[165] Basilicon III. i. 26.
[166] Balsamon. Schol. ad Nomocanon. Tit. I. c. 23.
[167] Novell. CXXIII. c. 14.
[168] Const. 42 § 1. Cod. i. 3.—Basilicon III. i. 26.
[169] Novell. VI. c. 1.
[170] Novell. CXXXVII. c. 2.—Basilicon III. i. c. 8.—Balsamon. Schol. ad Nomocan. Tit. i. c. 23.
[171] Leonis. Novell. Constit. II.
[172] Quinisext. can. 3.
[173] Ibid. c. 6.
[174] Ibid. can. 12, 48.—“Hoc autem dicimus non ad ea abolenda et evertenda quæ Apostolice antea constituta sunt, sed ... ne status ecclesiasticus ullo probro efficiatur.”
[175] Quinisext. c. 13, 30.
[176] Quinisext. c. 33.—The Armenian church in the middle ages, was excessively severe as to the chastity of its ministers. A postulant for orders was obliged to confess, and if he had been guilty of a single lapse, he was rejected. So a priest in orders if yielding to the weakness of the flesh out of wedlock was expelled, though they were not obliged to part with their wives, and the Greek rule permitting marriage in the lower orders was maintained.—Concil. Armenor. ann. 1362 Art. 50, 53, 93 (Martene Ampl. Collect. VII. 366-7, 403).
[177] Leonis Novell. Constit. III.—It is not improbable that this custom resulted from the iconoclastic schism of Leo the Isaurian and Constantine Copronymus, which occupied nearly the whole of the eighth century. These emperors found their most unyielding enemies in the monks. In the savage persecutions which disgraced the struggle, Constantine endeavored to extirpate monachism altogether. The accounts which his adversaries have transmitted of the violence and cruelties which he perpetrated are doubtless exaggerated, but there is likelihood that his efforts to discountenance celibacy, as the foundation of the obnoxious institution, are correctly reported. “Publice defamavit et dehonestavit habitum monachorum in hippodromo, præcipiens unumquemque monachum manutenere mulierem, et taliter transire per hippodromum, sumptis injuriis ab omni populo cumulatis” (Baronii Annal. ann. 766, No. 1). He ejected the monks from the monasteries, which he turned into barracks; some of the monks were tortured, others fled to the mountains and deserts, where they suffered every extremity, while others again succumbed to threats and temptations, and were publicly married—“alii corporeis voluptatibus addicti, suas etiam uxores circumducere non erubescebant” (Ibid. No. 28, 29).
[178] Synod. Montis Libani ann. 1736 P. II. c. v. No. 16, 17, Tab. I. No. 11; P. III. c. i. No. 11; P. IV. c. ii. No. 16.—Synod. Ain-Traz ann. 1835 c. xii. (Concil. Collect. Lacens. II. 134, 138, 262, 263, 366, 367, 585).
[179] London “Academy,” Nov. 13th, 1869, p. 51.—See also “The Russian Clergy,” by Father Gagarin, London, 1872 (London Athenæum, No. 2334. p. 72-3).
[180] For these details from the collection of Asseman I am indebted to the Abate Zaccaria’s Nuova Giustificazione del Celibato Sacro, pp. 129-30.
[181] The strange similarity between some of the teachings of the Bhagavad-gita and Christianity, and the apparent identity of the name and of some of the story of Krishna with those of Christ, would seem to need some such explanation as the above. The problem however is too complicated for discussion here.—See Weber’s Indian Literature p. 238 and Monier Williams’s Indian Wisdom p. 136. For the question of St. Thomas’s Indian Apostolate see Hohlenberg’s learned tract, “De Originibus et Fatis Eccles. Christ. in India Orientali.” Havniæ 1822.
[182] Hi omnes Nestoriani ... cum Jacobinis longe plures esse dicuntur quam Latini et Græci.—Jac. de Vitriaco Hist. Hierosol. cap. lxxvi.
[183] Calixt. de Conjug. Cleric. p. 415.—Osorii de Rebus Emmanuelis Regis Lusit. Lib. IX. (Colon. 1574 p. 305_a_).
[184] Parkyns’s Life in Abyssinia, chap. xxxi.—Mr. Parkyns sums up about 260 fast days in the year, most of them much more rigid than those observed in the Catholic church.
[185] Davids & Oldenberg’s Vinaya Texts, Part I. pp. 4, 8, 14, 16, 32, 35-7, 42, 47, 56.—Cf. Beal’s Catena pp. 209-14.—Burnouf, Introduction à l’histoire du Buddhisme indien. 2e Éd. pp. 245-8.
[186] Beal’s Chinese Pilgrims pp. xxxviii., xl., 155-9.—Schlagintweit’s Buddhism in Tibet, pp. 164-5.—Wheeler’s Hist. of India, III. 270.—Proc. Roy. Geog. Society, in London “Reader” Nov. 17, 1866.
[187] I. Tim. v. 3-14. cf. Act. IX. 39-41. In the time of Tertullian these women were regularly ordained (Ad Uxor. Lib. I. c. 7). This was forbidden by the council of Nicæa (can. 19) and by that of Laodicea (can. 11) in 372. In 451, however, we see by the council of Chalcedon (can. 15) that the ancient practice had been revived. The authorities on the question will be found very fully given by Chr. Lupus (Scholion in Can. 15 Concil. Chalced.—Opp. II. 90 sqq.). Even as late as the middle of the ninth century stringent rules were promulgated to punish the marriage of deaconesses (Capitul. Add. III. Cap. 75.—Baluz. I. 1191).
[188] Volo ergo juniores [viduas] nubere, filios procreare, matresfamilias esse, nullam occasionem dare adversario—I. Tim. v. 14.
[189] See Leon. I. Epist. lxxxvii. cap. 2. (Harduin. I. 1775). This was not so in the earlier periods. Tertullian (De Præscription. iii.), in alluding to the various classes of ecclesiastics, places the widows immediately after the order of deacons, and before the virgins.
[190] Nothing is so illogical as the logic resorted to in order to prove foregone conclusions. Donato Calvi (_apud_ Panzini, Pubblica Confessione di un Prigioneiro, Torino, 1865, p. 111) quotes the texts Matt. XIX. 12, Luke XIV. 33 and Matt. XIX. 21, 27, and then triumphantly concludes—“Ben lice conchiudere chiaramente da’sacri Vangeli raccogliersi fossero gli Apostoli veri religiosi coi tre voti della religione legati.”
[191] If further proof of this be required, beyond what has already been incidentally adduced, it is to be found in the 19th canon of the council of Ancyra, held about the year 314. By this, the vow of celibacy or virginity when broken only rendered the offender incapable of receiving holy orders. He was to be treated as a “digamus,” showing evidently that no punishment was inflicted, beyond the disability which attached to second marriages.
Even in the time of St. Augustin monks were frequently married, as we learn from his remarks concerning the heretics who styled themselves Apostolici and who gloried in their superior asceticism—“eo quod in suam communionem non reciperent utentes conjugibus et res proprias possidentes; quales habet Catholica [ecclesia] et monachos et clericos plurimos.”—Augustin. de Hæresib. No. XL.
Even Epiphanius, the ardent admirer of virginity, when controverting the errors of the same sect, declares that those who cannot persevere in their vows had better marry and reconcile themselves by penitence to the church rather than to sin in secret—“Melius est lapsum a cursu palam sibi uxorem sumere secundum legem et a virginitate multo tempore pœnitentiam agere et sic rursus ad ecclesiam induci, etc.”—Panar. Hæres. LXI.
We shall see hereafter how long it took to enforce the strict segregation of the cenobite from the world.
[192] St. Jerome vindicates for Paul the priority which was commonly ascribed to Antony, but he fully admits that the latter is entitled to the credit of popularizing the practice.—“Alii, autem, in quam opinionem vulgus omne consentit, asserunt Antonium hujus propositi caput, quod ex parte verum est: non enim tam ipse ante omnes fuit, quam ab eo omnium incitata sunt studia,” etc.—Hieron. Vit. Pauli cap. 1.—Epist. XXII. ad Eustoch. cap. 36.
Jerome also asserts that monachism was unknown in Palestine and Syria until it was introduced there by Hilarion, a disciple of St. Antony.—Vit. Hilarion. cap. 14.
[193] Instit. Divin. Lib. VI. cap. 10.—Cf. c. 17.
[194] As early as the commencement of the fourth century, we find Faustus, in his “tu quoque” defence of Manichæism, asserting that in the Christian churches the number of professed virgins exceeded that of women not bound by vows.—Augustin, contra Faust. Manich. Lib. XXX. c. iv.
[195] Propter luxum vanitatemque præsumptam.—Concil. Cæsaraug. I. ann. 381 c. vi.—Disobedience to the prohibition is threatened with prolonged suspension from communion.
[196] Cassiod. Hist. Tripart. Lib. I. c. 9.
[197] See Lib. XVI. Cod. Theod. Tit. ii. ll. 9, 10, 11, 14, etc. This evil had become so great by the time of Valens that in 365 that emperor declares “Quidam ignaviæ sectatores desertis civitatum muneribus, captant solitudines ac secreta, et specie religionis cætibus monizonton congregantur.” The most vigorous measures were requisite, “erui e latebris consulta præceptione mandavimus,” and he orders the culprits to be subjected again to their municipal duties under pain of forfeiture of all their property (Lib. XII. Cod. Theod. Tit. i. l. 63). In 376 the same emperor endeavored to enforce the obligation of military service on the crowds of vigorous men who filled the monasteries, and on their resistance a persecution arose in which many were killed—Hieron. Euseb. Chron. ann. 378.
[198] The lamentations of St. Cyprian have already been alluded to. In 305 the council of Elvira found it necessary to denounce perpetual excommunication against the “virgines sacratæ” who abandoned themselves to a life of licentiousness, while those guilty only of a single lapse were allowed restoration to communion on the deathbed, if earned by continual penitence (Concil. Eliberit. c. 13).
[199] Piget dicere quot quotidie virgines ruant, quantas de suo gremio mater perdat ecclesia: super quæ sidera inimicus superbus ponat thronum suum; quot petras excavet et habitet coluber in foraminibus earum. Videas plerasque viduas antequam nuptas, infelicem conscientiam mutata tantum veste protegere. Quas nisi tumor uteri, et infantum prodiderit vagitus, sanctas et castas se esse gloriantur, et erecta cervice et ludentibus pedibus incedunt. Aliæ vero sterilitatem præbibunt, et necdum sati hominis homicidium faciunt. Nonnullæ cum se senserint concepisse de scelere, abortii venena meditantur, et frequenter etiam ipsæ commortuæ, trium criminum reæ, ad inferos producuntur, homicidæ suæ, Christi adulteræ, necdum nati filii parricidæ—Hieron. Epist. XXII. ad Eustoch. c. 5.
[200] Concil. Carthag. I. c. 3.—Concil. Cæsaraugust. I. c. 8.
[201] Lib. IX. Cod. Theod. Tit. XXV. l. 2.
[202] Concil. Valent. I. ann. 374 can. ii.
[203] Postea vero in abruptum conscientiæ desperatione producti, de illicitis complexibus libere filios procreaverint, quod et publicæ leges et ecclesiastica jura condemnant.—Siricii Epist. I. c. 6.
[204] Regul. S. Pachom. c. 26, 79, 95.—The Rule which passes under the name of John, Bishop of Jerusalem, I believe is universally acknowledged to be spurious and therefore requires no special reference.
[205] Ibid. c. 29. This is in particularly striking contrast with mediæval monachism, which, as we shall see hereafter, considered the sacred precincts polluted by the foot of woman.
[206] Cassian. de Cænob. Instit. Lib. IV. c. 3, 4, 6, 6, 13.—Cassianus declares chastity to be the virtue by which men are rendered most like angels.
[207] De Monach. Decret. can. x. (Harduin. Concil. I. 498.)
[208] Nusquam missos, nusquam fixos, nusquam stantes, nusquam sedentes. Alii membra martyrum, si tamen martyrum, venditant; alii fimbrias et phylacteria sua magnificant ... et omnes petunt, omnes exigunt, aut sumptus lucrosæ egestatis, aut simulatæ pretium sanctitatis etc.—Augustin. de Opere Monachor. cap. 28.
[209] Cassian. Lib. V. c. 27, 28. The extravagant lengths to which this implicit subjection was habitually carried are further illustrated by Cassianus in Lib. IV. c. 10.
The same spirit is shown in the story told of St. Francis of Assisi, who took with him into the garden two novices to assist him in planting cabbages. He commenced by setting out the vegetables with their heads in the earth and their roots in the air. One of the novices ventured to remonstrate—“Father, that is not the way to make cabbages grow”—“My son,” interrupted the Saint, “you are not fitted for our order,”—and he dismissed the incautious youth on the spot.
[210] Synod. Roman, ann. 384 c. 1, 2.
[211] Siricii Epist. 1, c. 6.—A rather curious episode in monastic discipline is a law promulgated in 390 by Theodosius the Great prohibiting nuns from shaving their heads under severe penalties. “Feminæ quæ crinem suum contra divinas humanasque leges instinctu persuasæ professionis absciderint ab ecclesiæ foribus arceantur,” and any bishop permitting them to enter a church is threatened with deposition—Lib. XVI. Cod. Theod. Tit. ii. l. 27.
[212] De Bono Viduit. c. 10, 11.—It will be seen hereafter that in the twelfth century the church adopted as a rule of discipline the practices condemned by St. Augustin, and that in the sixteenth century the council of Trent elevated it into a point of faith.
[213] Innocent. Epist. ad Victricium. c. 12, 13.—The difficulty of the questions which arose in establishing the monastic system is shown in an epistle of Leo I. to the Mauritanian Bishops concerning some virgins professed who had suffered violence from the Barbarians. He decides that they had committed no sin, and could be admitted to communion if they persevered in a life of chastity and religious observance, but that they could not continue to be numbered with the holy maidens, while yet they were not to be degraded to the order of widows; and he further requires that they shall exhibit their sense of shame and humiliation. The problem evidently was one which transcended the acuteness even of Leo to solve—Leonis I. Epist. Episcop. per Cæsarien. Mauritan. cap. ii. V. (Harduin. I. 1775-6).
[214] Concil. Toletan. I. c. 16.
[215] Leo. Epist. ad Rusticum c. 12, 13, 14. So the second council of Arles, in 441 (can. 52), excommunicates the nun who marries until due penance shall have been performed, but does not indicate separation.
[216] Novell. Majorian. Tit. VI. This law continued in force for but five years, being abrogated in 463 by Severus.—Novell. Severi. Tit. I.
[217] For the ascetic extravagances which accompanied the development of monachism the reader is referred to the vigorous summary by Mr. Lecky in his History of European Morals.
[218] Socrat. Hist. Eccles. Lib. VII. c. 13, 14, 15.—Even before this, in the province of Africa, the political utility of such enthusiastic disciples had been recognized and acted on. At the council of Carthage, in 411, where the Donatists were condemned, the Imperial Commissioner, in pronouncing sentence, warned the Donatist bishops that they must restrain the turbulent monks within their dioceses—“Ii autem qui in præsidiis suis circumcellionum turbas se habere cognoscunt, sciant nisi eorum insolentiam omnimodis comprimere et refrenare gestierint, maxime ea loca fisco mox occupanda.”—Concil. Carthag. ana. 411 Cognit. III. cap. ult. (Harduin. I. 1190.)
[219] Concil. Chalced. c. 4, 7, 16. The most important of these, the fourth canon, was laid before the council by the Emperor in person.
[220] Lib. XVI. Cod. Theod. iii. 1.
[221] Lib. XVI. Cod. Theod. iii. 2.
[222] Const. 29 Cod. I. 3.
[223] Const. 53 § 1 Cod. I. 3.
[224] Novell. V. c. 4, 6.
[225] Novell. V. c. 8.
[226] Novell. CXXIII. c. 42.
[227] S. Theod. Studit. Testament. v. (Max. Bib. Pat. IX. I. 276).
[228] St. Benedict of Nursia, the real founder of Latin monachism, who quitted the world in 494, thus describes the wandering monks of his time: “Tertium vero monachorum teterrimum genus est Sarabaitarum ... qui bini aut terni, aut certe singuli sine pastore, non Dominicis sed suis inclusi ovilibus, pro lege eis est desideriorum voluptas; cum quidquid putaverint vel elegerint, hoc dicunt sanctum, et quod noluerint putant non licere. Quartum vero genus est monachorum quod nominatur gyrovagum, qui tota vita sua per diversas provincias ternis aut quaternis diebus per diversorum cellas hospitantur, semper vagi et nunquam stabiles, et propriis voluptatibus et gulæ illecebris servientes, et per omnia deteriores Sarabaitis: de quorum omnium miserrima conversatione melius est silere quam loqui.”—Regul. S. Benedicti c. 1.
[229] Cassiani de Cœnob. Instit. Lib. II. c. 8; Lib. V. c. 1, 15.
[230] Gelasii PP. I. Epist. IX. cap. xx., xxi.
[231] Symmachi PP. Epist. vi.
[232] Greg. Mag. Vit. S. Benedicti c. 2.—Juan Cirita, a Spanish saint of the twelfth century, was exposed to the same temptation as St. Benedict, the devil visiting him in the shape of a lovely woman who sought refuge from her pursuers in his cell. During a sleepless night, feeling his resolution giving way, he roused his fire and with a glowing brand burned his arm to the bone, whereupon the devil vanished, loading him with reproaches (Henriquez Vit. Joannis Cirita cap. ii.). Legends of this nature are not uncommon, nor are there wanting those of another class in which the immediate and visible agency of the Evil Spirit is not called into play. Thus the holy Godric, a Welsh saint of the twelfth century, endeavored to subdue his rebellious flesh in the manner which St. Benedict found so effectual, but without success. He then buried a cask in the earthen floor of his cell, filled it with water and fitted it with a cover, and in this receptacle he shut himself up whenever he felt the titillations of desire. In this manner, varied by occasionally passing the night up to his chin in a river of which he had broken the ice, he finally succeeded in mastering his fiery nature.—Girald. Cambrens. Gemm. Eccles. Dist. II. c. x.
[233] Regul. S. Benedicti c. 28, 29, 58.
[234] Tetrad. Regul. c. 1.
[235] Capit. Car. Mag. I. ann. 811 cap. xi. He also asks whether there were any monks in Gaul before the rule of St. Benedict was brought there, and is naturally not a little puzzled when told that St. Martin of Tours was a monk long anterior to the time of Benedict.—Capit. II. ann. 811 cap. xii. (Baluz. I. 331-2, Ed. Venet.).
[236]
Quinquaginta quinque millia quingenta quinque Omnes canonizati a te sunt translati. Est monachus sanctus. Caput vero Benedictus.— (Birck de Monast. Campidonens. c. 25.)
Bishop Trithemius is more moderate, his estimate amounting to only 15,559. (Miræi Orig. Benedict.)
[237] Gregor. PP. I. Lib. I. Epist. 42. Six years later he had to repeat his commands in stronger terms. (Cf. Lib. VII. Epist. 35. Lib. II. Epist. 28. Lib. IV. Epist. 27. Lib. X. Epist. 8.) Yet when the offender was a man of rank and power, as in the case of Venantius, Patrician of Syracuse, Gregory could lay aside the tone of lofty command and condescend to tender entreaty and earnest exhortation (Lib. I. Epist. 34), without even a threat of excommunication, and remain for years on the friendliest terms with him (Lib. XI. Epistt. 30, 35, 36), showing that the rule was as yet by no means firmly established. In another case, however, nothing can be more indignant and peremptory than his commands (Lib. VIII. Epistt. 8, 9).
[238] Gregor. PP. I. Lib. IV. Epist. 42.
[239] Gregor. PP. I. Lib. X. Epistt. 22, 23.—He states “ut etiam monachis ibidem degentibus mulieribus se jungere sine metu sit licitum” which he characterizes as “res ... omnino detestabilis et nefanda.”
[240] Gregor. PP. I. Lib. XI. Epist. 50.
[241] Concil. Parisiens. V. ann. 615 c. xiii.—In the decree of Clotair II., confirming the acts of this council, we find—“Puellas et viduas religiosas, aut sanctimoniales, quæ se Deo voverunt, tam quæ in propriis domibus resident, quam quæ in monasteriis positæ sunt, nullus nec per præceptum nostrum competat, nec trahere nec sibi in conjugio sociare penitus præsumat etc.”—Edict. Chlot. II. ann. 615 c. xviii. (Baluze).
[242] S. Fructuosi Bracarens. Regul. Commun. cap. 1.
[243] De Ecclesiast. Offic. Lib. II. cap. xvi. § 7.
[244] Solutos atque oberrantes, sola turpis vita complectitur et vaga, ... quique dum, nullum metuentes, explendæ voluptatis suæ licentiam consectantur, quasi animalia bruta, libertate ac desiderio suo feruntur, habentes signum religionis, non religionis officium, hippocentauris similes, neque equi neque homines, ... quorum quidem sordida atque infami numerositate satis superque nostra pars occidua pollet.—Ibid. Lib. II. c. iii.
[245] Ludov. Pii de Reform. Eccles. cap. 100. (Goldast. Const. Imp. III. 199.)
[246] Smaragd. Comment. in Regul. Benedict. c. 1.
[247] De Mor. German. c. 18, 19. It is a little singular that Salvianus names the Alamanni as the only exception to the character for chastity which he bestows on the Barbarians in general.
[248] From such chance allusions as are made by Gregory of Tours, this would almost seem to be the general rule, and not the exception. Thus he mentions that Apollinaris obtained the see of Rhodez at the solicitation of his wife and sister (Hist. Franc. Lib. III. c. 2), and shortly afterwards the same episcopate is filled by the appointment of “Innocentius Gabalitanorum comes” (Ibid. Lib. VI. c. 38). Sulpitius, when nominated to that of Bourges, “ad clericatum deductus, episcopatum ... suscepit” (Ibid. Lib. VI. c. 39). Badegisilus, Clotair’s mayor of the palace, received the bishopric of Le Mans “qui tonsuratus, gradus quos clerici sortiuntur ascensus,” was duly installed (Ibid. Lib. VI. c. 9). Indeed, in his catalogue of the Bishops of Tours, Gregory specifies of Euphronius, the eighteenth bishop, that he was “ab ineunte ætate clericus,” showing how unusual it was to be regularly bred to the church.
[249] Hincmari Vit. S. Remigii c. 42, 43.
[250] Greg. Turon. de Glor. Confess. c. 78.
[251] Concil. Matiscon. I. c. 3.
[252] Greg. Turon. Hist. Franc. Lib. IV. c. 4. At this period the church of Britanny was rather British than Frankish. See Haddan & Stubbs, II. 72 sqq.
[253] Concil. Turon. II. c. 19, 20.—A remark of Gregory of Tours (Hist. Franc. Lib. VIII. cap 19) has been assumed to indicate that priests could legitimately have commerce with their wives. By comparing it with the canons cited above, however, it evidently can at the most have reference to the lower orders of the clergy.
[254] Concil. Toletan. III. c. 5.
[255] L. Wisigoth. Lib. III. Tit. iv. l. 18. This law is preserved in the Fuero Juzgo, or mediæval Romance version of the code (Lib. III. Tit. iv. ley 18).
[256] L. Wisigoth. Lib. III. Tit. v. l. 2.
[257] Concil. Toletan VIII. ann. 653 can iv. v. vi.—These measures were as fruitless as the preceding. Cf. Concil. Toletan. IX. ann. 655 can. x.
[258] Rex Witiza se effrenate præcipitans per omne genus flagitii, legem nequissimam tulit; ut more sara(ce)norum cuilibet laico et clerico liceret, quotquot posset alere, uxores et concubinas impune domi suæ retinere.—Liutprandi Chron. No. 174 ann. 706.
[259] Liutprandi Chron. No. 181 ann. 709; No. 188 ann. 711. Without entering into the question of the correctness with which this chronicle has been attributed to Liutprand of Cremona, I may say that it has every appearance of being an authentic remnant of antiquity (Cf. Antonii Biblioth. Hispan. I. 585).
[260] Concil. Roman, sub Silvest. can. xix. (Migne’s Patrol. VIII. 840).
[261] Pelagii PP. II. Epist. xiv.
[262] Superstes uxor aut filii, per quos ecclesiastica solet periclitari substantia.—Pelagii PP. I. Cethego Patricio.
[263] L. Wisigoth. Lib. v. Tit. i. l. 2.
[264] Gregor. PP. I. Lib. XIII. Epist. 6.—This rule had come to be very generally neglected. The importance attached to it, however, by strict disciplinarians is well illustrated in the firmness displayed by John, Patriarch of Alexandria, a contemporary of Gregory, whose bountiful charity had earned for him the title of Eleemosynarius. In a time of extreme famine, a wealthy aspirant offered him 200,000 bushels of corn and 100 pounds of gold for the grade of deacon. He had unluckily been twice married, and John refused the dazzling bribe, although the episcopal treasury had been exhausted in relieving the necessities of the suffering people (Thomassin, Discip. de l’Église, Pt. II. Liv. 3, c. 15.)
[265] Gregor. PP. I. Lib. XIII. Epistt. 35, 36.
[266] Ibid. Lib. IV. Epist. 26; Lib. V. Epist. 3; Lib. VIII. Epist. 24.—Similar attempts had previously been made by sundry provincial councils. In the case of Andrew, Bishop of Tarentum, who was accused of maintaining relations with a former concubine, Gregory recognizing the impossibility of obtaining proof, leaves it to his own conscience. If he has had any commerce with her since his ordination, he is commanded at once to resign his position as the only mode of insuring his salvation (Ibid. Lib. III. Epistt. 45, 46).
[267] Ibid. Lib. I. Epist. 44; Lib. IV. Epistt. 5, 36.
[268] Ibid. Lib. XI. Epist. 69.
[269] Ibid. Lib. IX. Epist. 106.
[270] Udalric. Bamberg. Cod. Lib. II. Epist. 10.
[271] Gregor. PP. I. Lib. I. Epist. 52; Lib. IX. Epist. 60.
[272] Gregor. PP. I. Dial. Lib. IV. cap. xi.
[273] In 649 we find Amandus, Bishop of Maestricht, resigning his office on account of the impossibility of enforcing the canons among his priests and deacons. Martin I. endeavored to dissuade him from his purpose, and urged his proceeding with the utmost rigor against all transgressors (Hartzheim Concil. German. I. 28).
[274] Concil. Roman. ann. 721.
[275] Chron. Gradensis Supplement.
[276] Capitul. Arechis Benevent. cap. XII. (Canciani I. 262).
[277] Muratori Antiq. Med. Ævi Dissert. LXXIV.
[278] Gregor. PP. II. Epist. 14 cap. 12.
[279] Modo autem maxima ex parte episcopales sedes traditæ sunt laicis cupidis ad possidendum, vel adulteratis clericis, scortatoribus et publicanis sæculariter ad perfruendum.... Si invenero inter illos diaconos quos nominant, qui a pueritia sua semper in stupris, semper in adulteriis et in omnibus semper spurcitiis vitam ducentes, sub tali testimonio venerunt ad diaconatum, et modo in diaconatu concubinas quatuor vel quinque vel plures noctu in lecto habentes, evangelium tamen legere et diaconos se nominare non erubescunt, nec metuunt: et sic in talibus incestis ad ordinem presbyteratus venientes, in iisdem peccatis perdurantes, et peccata peccatis adjicientes, presbyteratus officio fungentes, dicunt se pro populo posse intercedere, et sacras oblationes offerre. Novissime, quod pejus est, sub talibus testimoniis per gradus singulos ascendentes, ordinantur et nominantur episcopi. Si usquam tales invenero inter illos, rogo ut habeam præceptum et conscriptum auctoritatis vestræ, quid de talibus diffiniatis, ut per responsum Apostolicum convincantur et arguantur peccatores.—Bonifacii Epist. 132.
[280] Milo quidam, tonsura clericus, moribus, habitu, et actu irreligiosus laicus, episcopia Remorum ac Trevirorum usurpans insimul, per multos annos pessumdederit.—Hincmar. Epist. xxx. c. 20.—Sola tonsura clerico, qui secum processerat ad bellum.—Flodoard. Hist. Remens. Lib. II. c. 12.—Nihilque in eo de clericali honore vel vita nisi sola tonsura enituit.—Hist. Trevirens. (D’Achery Spicileg. II. 212).
[281] Hist. Trevirens. (D’Achery Spicileg. II. 212).
[282] Bonifacii Epist. 142.
[283] Hist. Trevirens. loc. cit.
[284] Bonifacii loc. cit.
[285] Othlon. Vit. S. Bonifac. Lib. I. c. 44.
[286] Bonifacii Epist. 85.
[287] Flodoard. Hist. Remens. Lib. II. cap. 12.—Capit. Caroli Calvi Tit. XXVII. cap. 7 (Baluze).
[288] Et tam laicorum injusta concubinarum copula partim exhortante sancto viro separata est, quam etiam clericorum nefanda cum uxoribus conjunctio sejuncta ac separata.—Willibald. Vit. S. Bonifac. c. 9.
[289] Capit. Caroloman. ann. 742 c. 1, 3, 6.
[290] Bonifacii Epist. 137.
[291] Ibid. Epist. 132, 142.
[292] Capit. Caroloman. ann. 743 c. 1.
[293] Zachar. PP. Epist. 8, c. 11, 18.
[294] Pippini Capit. ann. 744 c. 4, 8, 9.
[295] Bonifac. Epistt. 135, 139 (Zachar. PP. Epist. 9).
[296] Othlon. Vit. S. Bonif. Lib. II. c. 11.
[297] Bonifacii Epist. 135.—S. Ludgeri Vit. S. Bonifacii.
[298] Bonifacii Epist. 140.
[299] Capit. Pippini ann. 755.
[300] Regul. S. Chrodegangi cap. 29, 56, 68, 70.
[301] Cod. Carolini Epist. lxiv. (Patrolog. T. 98 p. 319). Yet even in 772 we find that a council in Bavaria found it necessary to prohibit the marriage of nuns.—Concil. Dingolving. can. 2 (Hartzheim Concil. German. I. 129).
[302] Capit. Car. Mag. II. ann. 811 cap. iv. (Baluz. I. 329—Ed. Venet.).
[303] Ghaerbaldi Judicia Sacerdotalia de Criminibus c. 13 (Martene Ampl. Coll. VII. 31).
[304] Ludov. Pii. Capit. Ingelenheim. c. 5.
[305] Capit. Aquisgran. ann. 817. Cf. Miræi Cod. Donat. Piar. c. 13.—This Capitulary regulating monastic life was generally adopted as a supplement to the rule of Benedict (Leo. Ostiens. Chron. Cassinens. Lib. I. c. 16).
[306] See ante, p. 123. Cf. Pseudo-Hormisdæ Epist. Encyc. (Migne’s Patrol. T. LXIII. p. 527).
[307] Quid enim est gravius carnale delictum admittere _sine quo in multis pauci inveniuntur_, an Dei filium timendo negare? in quo uno ipsum beatum Petrum apostolorum principem, ad cujus nunc corpus indigni sedemus, lapsum esse cognoscimus, sed post negationem pœnitentia secuta, et post pœnitentiam misericordia data.—Pseudo-Gregor. Epist. ad Secundinum.
Isidor Mercator also includes two canons from the sixth century forgery of the Roman Council said to have been held under Silvester I. (see p. 122). Of these, one prohibits bishops from celebrating the marriage of nuns under seventy years of age; the other forbids priests from marrying, under a penalty of ten year’s suspension, with a threat of perpetual deprivation for contumacy. (Constit. Pseudo-Silvestri cap. x. xix.) The adoption of these in the False Decretals would seem at least to be superfluous.
[308] Capit. Carol. Mag. I. ann. 802 c. 17.
[309] Concil. Aquisgran. ann. 836, de vit. et doc. infer. ordin. can. xii., xiv.—De monasteriis puellarum quæ in quibusdam locis lupanaria potius videntur esse quam monasteria.
[310] Capitul. add. IV. cap. clx. (Baluze, I. 1227).
[311] Bonifacii Epist. 19.
[312] Capit. Aquisgran. ann. 817, c. xi.—Chavard, Célibat des Prêtres, Genève, 1874, p. 35.
[313] Quia, instigante diabolo, etiam in illis scelus frequenter perpetratum invenitur, aut etiam in pedissequis earum. Nec igitur matrem, neque amitam, neque sororem permittimus ultra habitare in domo una cum sacerdote.—Theodulf. Aurelian. Capit. Secund. (Baluz. et Mansi II. 99.)
He had previously (Epist. c. 12) promulgated the prohibition, assigning for it the more decent reason, in imitation of St. Augustin, of the danger arising from female attendants. In this he was imitated, about 850, by Rodolf of Bourges (Capit. Rodulf. Bituricens. c. 16), and about 871 by Walter of Orleans (Capit. Walteri Aurelian. c. 3).
In 889, however, Riculfus of Soissons declares the lamentable truth without reserve: “Nos vero etiam a matribus, amitis, sororibus vel propinquis cavendum dicimus, ne forte illud eveniat quod in sancta scriptura legitur de Thamar sorore Absalon ... de Loth etiam ... Quod si aliquis vestrum matrem, sororem vel amitam ad convescendum vocaverit, expleto convivio ad domos suas vel ad hospitia a domo presbyteri remota, cum luce diei eas faciat remeare; periculosum quippe est ut vobiscum habitent.”—Riculfi Suess. Const. c. 14.
[314] Thus the council of Mainz in 888—“Quod multum dolendum est, sæpe audivimus per illam concessionem plurima scelera esse commissa, ita ut quidam sacerdotum, cum propriis sororibus concumbentes, filios ex eis generassent, et idcirco constituit hæc sancta synodus, ut nullus presbyter ullam feminam secum in domo propria permittat quatenus occasio malæ suspicionis vel facti iniqui penitus auferatur” (Concil. Mogunt. ann. 888 c. 10). In the same year the third canon of the council of Metz repeats the prohibition; while in 895 the council of Nantes declares—“Sed neque illas quas canones concedunt; quia instigante diabolo, etiam in illis scelus frequenter perpetratum reperitur, aut etiam in pedissequis illarum, scilicet matrem, amitam, sororem.”—Concil. Namnetens. ann. 895 c. 3.
It is true that some authorities, including the great name of Pagi, attribute to this council of Nantes the date of 660, but this is unimportant as regards the canon in question, for its necessity during the period under consideration is shown by its insertion in the Capitularies of Benedict the Levite (Lib. VII. c. 376), and in the collection of Regino of Pruhm (Lib. I. c. 104).
[315] Capit. Carol. Calvi Tit. III. cap. 4, 5.
[316] Martene Ampliss. Collect. I. 151.
[317] Hincmari Epist. XXXII. c. 20.
[318] Hincmari Capit. Presbyteris data. cap. XXI.-XXV.
Hincmar repeats his instructions, with some amplifications, in another document, in which he declares them to be the received traditional rules—“a majoribus nostris accepimus” (De Presbyt. criminos. c. XI.-XVIII.). That they were generally practised is shown in their almost literal repetition by the council of Trosley in 909—with the exception that in some cases fourteen or twenty-one witnesses were required for conviction (Concil. Troslei. c. ix.).
[319] Martene Ampl. Collect. I. 151.
[320] Capit. Synod. Remens. ann. 874 c. 3.
[321] Nicholai I. Respons. ad Consult. Bulgar. c. 70.
[322] Efficitur ad hæc uxorius, liberos procreans, et ad suæ damnationis cumulum nil sibi clericale præter tonsuram præferens.—Folcuin. de Gest. Abbat. Laubiens. c. 12.
[323] Mantion. Episc. Catalaun. Epist. ad Fulc. Remens. (Migne’s Patrol. T. 131, p. 23.)
[324] Liutprand. Antapod. Lib. III. c. 43.
[325] Liutprand. Hist. Otton. c. 4, 10.—Chron. Benedict. S. Andreæ Monach. c. 35.
[326] Concil. Turon. ann. 925. (Martene Thesaur. IV. 73.)
[327] Ratherii de nuptu cujusdam illicito c. 4.
[328] Ratherii de contemptu canon. P. I. c. 4.
[329] Atton. Vercell. Epist. ix.
[330] Enarratio eorum quæ perverse gesta sunt, etc. (Muratori, Antiq. Med. Ævi Diss. LXII.).
[331] Institutes of Polity, Civil and Ecclesiastical, c. 19, 23 (Thorpe, Ancient Laws, &c. of England, II. 329, 337).
[332] Ratherii Itinerar. c. 5.
[333] Ratherii Synodica c. 15.
[334] Gunzo the Grammarian, in his learned treatise, makes use of the recognized celibacy of the clergy as a comparison. “Non enim una eademque res bona, licet æque omnibus conceditur. Siquidem nuptiæ, laicis concessæ, sacris ordinibus denegantur.”—Gunzonis Epist. ad Augienses.
[335] Leon. PP. VII. Epist. 15.
[336] Constit. Otton. ann. 940, c. 12.
[337] Quod si sacerdotes incontinenter propter ipsam continentiam primam quam sortitus est, separati a consortio cellæ, teneat uxorem; si vere aliam duxerit, excommunicetur.—Concil. Spalatens. ann. 925 c. 15.
The passage is evidently corrupt, but its intention is manifest. The reading suggested by Batthyani may be reasonably accepted. “Quod si sacerdotes incontinentes propter ipsam continentiam quam quis primam sortitus est, separati a consortio cellæ, teneant uxorem, tolerantur; si vero aliam duxerint, excommunicentur.” (Batthyani Legg. Eccles. Hungar. I. 333-4.)
[338] Richeri Hist. Lib. II. c. 81. The canons of the council, however, as they have reached us, are silent on the subject.
[339] Concil. Augustan. ann. 952 c. 1, 4, 11.
[340] Cod. Bamberg. Lib. II. Epist. 10.
St. Ulric is noteworthy as the first subject of papal canonization, having been enrolled in the calendar by the council of Rome in 993. That priestly marriage should be advocated by so pious and venerable a father was of course not agreeable to the sacerdotal party, and his evidence against celibacy has not infrequently been ruled out of court by discrediting the authenticity of the epistle. The compiler of the collection containing it, made in 1125, prefixed the name of Nicholas as that of the pope to whom it was addressed, and as St. Ulric was about equidistant between Nicholas I. in the ninth and Nicholas II. in the eleventh century, it has been suggested that the epistle was addressed to the latter, on the occasion of his reforms in 1059, the use of St. Ulric’s name being assumed as a mistake of the compiler. That this is not so is shown by the fact that already in 1079 it was known as St. Ulric’s, being condemned as such in that year by Gregory VII.—“scriptum quod dicitur sancti Oudalrici ad papam Nicholaum, de nuptiis presbiterorum” (Bernald. Constant. Chron. ann. 1079). The authenticity of the document, I believe, is generally admitted by unprejudiced critics.
[341] Ratherii Discordia c. 1, 6.
[342] Ratherii Epist. XI., XII.—His letter to the Empress Adelaide, announcing his willingness to retire from the contest, and to seek the congenial shades of a monastery, is most uncourtly. (Epist. XIII.)
[343] Ruotgeri Vit. S. Brunonis c. 38.—Ratherius consoled himself epigrammatically by condensing his misfortunes in the Leonine verse—“Veronæ præsul, sed ter Ratherius exsul.”
[344] De Contempt. Canon. P. II. c. 2.—Præloquiorum Lib. V. c. 18.
The existing confusion is well exemplified by another remark—“Expertus sum talem qui ante ordinationem adulterium perpetravit, postea quasi continenter vixit; alterum qui post ordinationem uxorem duxit; et iste illum, ille istum carpebat.”—De Contempt. Canon. P. I. c. 11.
[345] Atton. Vercell. Epist. 9. In another epistle (No. 10) Atto congratulates himself on the reform of some of his clergy, and threatens the contumacious with degradation.
[346] Othloni Vit. S. Wolfkangi c. 15, 16, 17, 23.
[347] “Ad cumulum damnationis suæ, accepit mulierem, nomine Hildeburgam, in senectute, quæ, ingresso illo ad se, concepit et peperit filios et filias, &c.” The chronicler makes the end of this aged sinner an example of poetical justice such as may frequently be found in the monkish annals of those times—“Qui dum esset flebotomatus, nocte insecuta dormivit cum Episcopissa; qua de re vulnus cœpit intumescere, et dolor usque ad interiora cordis devenire.” Finding his end approaching, he assumed the monastic habit and took the vows, after which he immediately expired.—Act. Pontif. Cenoman. c. 29 (Dom Bouquet, X. 384-5).
Fulbert of Chartres has left us a lively sketch of the military bishops of the period.—“Tyrannos potius appellabo, qui bellicis occupati negotiis, multo stipati latus milite, solidarios pretio conducunt, ut nullos sæculi reges aut principes noverim adeo instructos bellorum legibus, totam armorum disciplinam in procinctu militiæ servare, digerere turmas, ordines componere, ad turbandam ecclesiæ pacem, et Christianorum, licet hostium, sanguinem, effundendum.”—Fulbert. Carnot. Epist. 112.
[348] Chron. S. Petri Vivi (D’Achery Spicileg. II. 470).
[349] This singular oath has been published by Muratori (Antiq. Ital. Diss. XX.).—“Ego Andrea presbiter promitto coram Deo et omnibus sanctis, et tibi Guarino episcopo, quod carnalem commistionem non faciam; et si fecero, et onoris mei et beneficio ecclesiæ perdam.”
[350] S. Petri Damiani Epist. Lib. IV. Epist. 8.—Leo Marsicanus (Chron. Cassinens. Lib. II. c. 16) asserts that in his youth he himself had seen and conversed with a priest who had been one of the eye-bearers.
[351] Abbon. Floriac. Epist. 14.
[352] Although Aimoin, who was an eye-witness, does not specially mention the cause that excited the monks to ungovernable fury, yet a casual allusion shows that women were responsible for it.—“Cæterum, tantæ cladis compilatores certissime agnoscentes beatum obiisse Abbonem, certatim cuncti in fugam vertuntur, ita ut, terris reddito die, ne mulieres quidam in universis forensibus ipsius villæ invenirentur domibus”—(Abbon. Floriac. Vit. c. 20)—and the day after his death “una ex his mulieribus quæ clamore suo seditionem concitaverant” became suddenly mad, and was struck with incurable leprosy—(Aimoin. Mirac. S. Abbonis c. 2).
[353] Damian. Carm. ccxxi.
[354] Aimoin. Vit. S. Abbonis c. 9.
[355] Episcopi sui temporis aliqui fastu superbiæ, aliqui simplicitate cordis, filios sæcularium sacerdotum ad sacros ordines admittere dedignabantur, nec ad clericatum eos recipere volentes; hic vero beatus, neminem despiciens, neminem spernens, passim cunctos recipiebat.—Constant. S. Symphor. Vit. Adalberon. II. c. 24.
[356] Dithmar. Merseberg. Lib. VI. c. 24.
[357] S. Heinrici Sentent. de Conjug. Cleric. (Patrologiæ T. 140 p. 231).
[358] A nullo scriptorum qui de illo sive de episcopio ejus locuti sunt, laudatus est. Palam memorant quod habitu non opere monachus fuerit.
Successit Hugo, legis Domini violator Clara stirpe satus, sed Christi lumine cassus. —Order. Vital. Lib. V. c. 10 § 41.
[359] About the year 990, for instance, we find Duke Richard reforming the celebrated Abbey of Fécamp and replacing with Benedictines the former occupants—canons whose secular mode of life outraged his pious sensibilities—“contigit Fiscannenses canonicos aliorum canonicorum mores imitari, latas perditionis vias ingredi, et rerum temporalium luxus et desidias voluptuose sectari.”—Anon. Fiscannens. c. 17.
[360] Nam conjugem nomine Herlevam, ut comes, habuit, ex qua tres filios, Richardum, Radulfum et Guillelmum genuit; quibus Ebroicensem comitatum et alios honores amplissimos secundum jus sæculi distribuit.—Orderic. Vital. Lib. V. c. 10 § 42.
So in the Normanniæ Nova Chronica, published by Chéruel in 1850, “Iste Robertus fuit uxoratus, et ex Herleva conjuge sua tres filios habuit, Richardum, Radulfum et Willelmum.”
[361] Bénoit, Chronique des Ducs de Normandie, v. 32427, 24912. We may fairly conclude from these expressions that Robert was educated for the priesthood.
[362] Voluptatibus carnis mundanisque curis indecenter inhæsit, filiumque nomine Michaelem probum militem et legitimum genuit, quem in Anglia jam senem rex Henricus honorat et diligit.—Orderic. Vital. Lib. V. c. 10 § 43.
[363] Concil. Ansan. ann. 990 c. 5.
[364] Concil. Pictaviens. c. ann. 1000 c. 3.
[365] Si clericus superioris gradus, qui uxorem habuit, et post confessionem vel honorem clericatus iterum earn cognoverit, sciat sibi adulterium commisisse, sicut superiore sententia unusquisque juxta ordine suo pœniteat [i. e. diaconus et monachi VII. (annos) III. ex his pane et aqua. Presbyter x. Episcopus XII., V. ex his pane et aqua.] ... Si quis clericus aut monachus postquam se devoverit ad sæcularem habitum iterum reversus fuerit aut uxorem duxerit, X. annos pœniteat, III. ex his in pane et aqua, nunquam postea in conjugium copuletur.—Judicium Pœnitentis ex Sacrament. Rhenaug.
[366] Gerberti Sermo de Informat. Episcopor.
[367] Gerberti Opp. p. 197 sqq. (Ed. Migne).
[368] “Taceo de me quem novo locutionis genere equum emissarium susurrant, uxorem et filios habentem, propter partem familiæ meæ de Francia recollectam.”—Gerberti Epist. Sect. I. No. XI.—Gerbert’s reputation for sanctity is not such as to render scandalous the suspicion that the family thus gathered around him might afford legitimate occasion for gossip, notwithstanding his abbacy and the fact that he had been bred in a convent.
[369] Ita ut clerici (quod non absque dolore cordis fateor) impudici, bilingues, ebrii, turpis lucri cupidi, habentes fidem, et ut verius dicam, infidelitatem, in conscientia impura, non probati in bona, sed in malo opere præsciti ministrantes, et innumera crimina habentes, sacro ministerio adsciscantur.—Gildæ de Excid. Britan. Pt. III. cap. 23—Cf. cap. 1, 2, 3.
[370] “_Unius uxoris virum._” Quid ita apud nos quoque contemnitur, quasi non audiretur, vel idem dicere et virum uxorum?... Sed quid erit, ubi nec pater nec filius mali genitoris exemplo pravatus conspicitur castus?—Gildæ loc. cit.
[371] Modern criticism has raised doubts as to the existence of St. Patrick. Whether they are well-grounded or not is a matter of little importance here, as we are concerned only with the institutions bearing his name, which institutions undoubtedly did exist. Meanwhile I may add that few remote events appear to rest on better authority than the conversion of the Gaeidhil, about the year 438, by a person known to his contemporaries as Patraic, or Patricius; and the name of Cain Patraic applied to the secular code attributed to him, dates from a very high antiquity.—See Senchus Mor, Hancock’s Ed. Vol. I. Dublin, 1865.
[372] Synod. S. Patricii c. 9, 17 (Haddan & Stubbs II. 328-9)—Synod. II. S. Patricii c. 17, 21 (Ibid. 335-6).
[373] Præfat. Gildæ de Pœnitent. cap. 1 (Martene Thesaur. IV. 7).
[374] Lib. de Remed. Peccat. cap. de Fornicat. (Martene IV. 23).—Cf. Synod. Aquilon. Britan. cap. 1 (Ibid. p. 9).
[375] In this long course of penance, three months were to be spent in solitary confinement, with bread and water at night; then eighteen months in fasting on bread and water; then bread and water three days in the week for five years and three months; then bread and water on Fridays for the remaining three years.—Gratian. Dist. LXXXII. c. 5.
[376] Arbedoc et Haelhucar Lib. XXXVIII. cap. 7 (D’Achery I. 500).
[377] Haddan & Stubbs, Councils of Great Britain, I. 112.
[378] Bernardi Vit. S. Malachiæ cap. vi.
[379] S. Columbani Regul. cap. vi.
[380] Reliquit (Columbanus) successores magna continentia ac divino amore regularique institutione insignes ... pietatis et castitatis opera diligenter observantes (Bedæ Hist. Eccles. Lib. III. c. 4, cf. also c. 26). Bede’s orthodoxy on the subject is unquestionable: “Sacerdotibus ut semper altari queant assistere, semper ab uxoribus continendum, semper castitas observanda præcipitur” (In Lucæ Evang. Exposit. Lib. I. cap. 1).—“Quanta sunt maledictione digni qui prohibent nubere et dispositionem cœlestis decreti quasi a diabolo repertam condemnant? ... sed magis honoranda, majore est digna benedictione virginitas.” (Hexæmeron. Lib. I. sub tit. Benedixitque illis.) See also De Tabernac. Lib. III. c. 9, already referred to (p. 65).
[381] See, for instance, the proceedings of the synod of Whitby in 664, where the differences between the Scottish and Roman observances were fully discussed (Spelman. Concil. I. 145). So when, in 633, Honorius I. addressed the Scottish clergy, reproving their false computation of Easter and their Pelagianism, he made no allusion to any want of clerical purity (Bedæ Hist. Eccles. Lib. II. c. 19).
[382] “Opto enim doceri an clerici continere non valentes, possint contrahere; et si contraxerint, an debeant ad sæculum redire”—to which Gregory responds with a long exhortation as to the duties of the “clerici extra sacros ordines constituti”—Gregor. I. Regist. Lib. XI. Epist. lxiv. Respons. 2.
[383] Si episcopi filius sit, sit dimidium hoc (Leg. Inæ c. LXXVI.). The rubric of the law is “De occidente filiolum vel patrinum alicujus” (Thorpe, Ancient Laws of England, II. 472).
[384] Denique promulgatur decretum ... de abdicandis sacerdotum uxoribus.—Spelman. Concil. I. 216.
[385] Cave, Script. Eccles. Hist. pp. 424-5 (Ed. 1705).
[386] Theodori Pœnitent. I. ix. 1, 4, 5, 6, 10; II. ii. 12 (Haddan & Stubbs, III. 184-5, 192).
[387] See, for instance, St. Aldhelm’ rhapsodies, “De laudibus virginitatis,” and “De laudibus virginum.” The orthodoxy of Bede on this question has already been alluded to.
According to the legend, St. Aldhelm tried his virtue by the same crucial experiments as those resorted to by some of the ardent devotees of the third century, concealing his motive in order that his humility might enjoy the benefit of undeserved reprobation. “Sancti Aldelmi Malmesburiensis, qui inter duas puellas, unam ab uno latere, alteram ab altero, singulis noctibus ut ab hominibus diffamaretur, a Deo vero cui nota fuerat conscientia ipsius et continentia copiosius in futurum remuneraretur, jacuisse describitur.”—Girald. Cambrens. Gemm. Eccles. Dist. II. cap. xv.
[388] Ecgberti Pœnitent. I. II. 3; IV. 2, 7, 8; V. 1-22.—Ejusd. Dialog, V. (Haddan & Stubbs, III. 406, 419-23).
[389] Epist. ad Geruntium.—Aldhelmi Opp. p. 83 (Ed. Oxon. 1844).
[390] Johan. PP. IV. Epist. iii.
[391] Bedæ Epist. II.
[392] Bonifacii Epist. 105.
[393] Can. 20 directs greater strictness with regard to visitors, “unde non sint sanctimonialium domicilia turpium confabulationum, commessationum, ebrietatum, luxuriantiumque cubilia.” Can. 28 orders that nuns after taking the veil shall not wear lay garments; and can. 29 that clerks, monks, and nuns shall not live with the laity. (Spelman. Concil. I. 250-4.—Haddan & Stubbs, III. 369, 374.)
This demoralization of the nunneries is not to be wondered at when Boniface, in reproving Ethelbald, King of Mercia, for his evil courses, could say, “Et adhuc, quod pejus est, qui nobis narrant adjiciunt: quod hoc scelus maxime cum sanctis monialibus et sacratis Deo virginibus per monasteria commissum sit.” This sacrilegious licentiousness, indeed, would seem almost to have been habitual with the Anglo-Saxon reguli for Boniface instances the fate of Ethelbald’s predecessor Ceolred and of Osred of Northumbria who had both came to an untimely end in consequence of indulgence in similar evil courses.—Bonifacii Epist. 19.
[394] Concil. Calchuth. can. 15, 16 (Haddan & Stubbs, III. 455-6).
[395] Haddan & Stubbs, Councils, etc., III. 493.
[396] Propter fornicationem fugiendam unusquisque _laicus_ suam uxorem legitimam habeat.—Concil. Calchuth. can. 16.
[397] Concil. Celicyth. ann. 816 can. 4 8 (Haddan & Stubbs, III. 580-3).
[398] Goscelini Vit. S. Swithuni c. 1, 2.
[399] Leg. Aluredi c. 8, 18.—Constit. Odon. Cantuar. c. 7.
[400] Leg. Edwardi et Guthrun. c. 3.—Leg. Eadmund. Eccles. c. 1.
[401] Bridfrit. Vit. S. Dunstan. c. 5, 7. Bridfrith was a disciple of St. Dunstan, and composed his biography but a few years after the death of his patron. He does not state what was the position of Dunstan at the time of his betrothal; but Osbern, a hundred years later, asserts that he had acquired the lower orders only, and that he received the priesthood and took the monastic vows simultaneously.—Osberni Vit. S. Dunstan. c. 8, 12.
[402] Osbern. Vit. S. Dunstan. c. 35.—Florent. Wigorn. ann. 964, 973.—Matt. Westmonast. ann. 963.
[403] Vit. S. Æthelwoldi c. 14.
[404] Si ista solerti scrutinio curassetis, non tam horrenda et abominanda ad aures nostras de clericis pervenissent ... dicam dolens quo modo diffluant in commessationibus, in ebrietatibus, in cubilibus et impudicitiis, ut jam domus clericorum putentur prostibula meretricum, conciliabulum histrionum.... Ad hoc ergo exhauserunt patres nostri thesauros suos? ad hoc fiscus regius, detractis redditibus multis elargitus est? ad hoc ecclesiis Christi agros et possessiones regalis munificentia contulit, ut deliciis clericorum meretrices ornentur? luxuriosæ convivæ præparentur? canes ac aves et talia ludicra comparentur? Hoc milites clamant, plebs submurmurat, mimi cantant et saltant, et vos negligitis, vos parcitis, vos dissimulatis.—Oratio Edgari ann. 969 (Spelman. Concil. I. 477).
[405] Vit. S. Æthelwold. c. 12.
[406] “Gif preorst ewenan forlæte and oðre nime, anaþema sit” (Leg. Presbyt. Northumbriens. c. 35). Spelman’s translation of this “Si presbyter concubinam suam dimiserit et aliam acceperit anathema sit” (Concil. I. 498) is perhaps hardly correct. Cwene can be interpreted in either a good or a bad sense, as a wife or a mistress; and the terms of the law show that the connection was a recognized one, the sin consisting in disregarding it. If the priest’s companion were only a concubine, his guilt would not be measurably increased by merely changing his unlawful consort.
[407] Chron. de Abbat. Abbendoniæ (Chron. Abingdon. II. 279).
[408] Osberni Vit. S. Dunstan. c. 36.
[409] Chron. de. Abbat. Abbendon. _loc. cit._
[410] Vit. S. Æthelwold. c. 14, 15.
[411] Johannis PP. XIII. Epist. xxii.
[412] Concil. sub Dunstano (Spelman. I. 480).
[413] Ædgari Charta de Oswalde’s Law (Spelman. I. 433).
[414] Anglo-Saxon Chron. ann. 964.
[415] Monach. Hydens. Leg. c. 8, 9 (Spelman. I. 438).
[416] Canon. sub Edgaro—Mod. imponend. Pœnitent. c. 28, 29 (Thorpe, II. 273).
[417] Oratio Edgari (Spelman. I. 476).
[418] Spelman. I. 479.
[419] Guillel. Malmesbur. Lib. II. c. 8.
[420] Florent. Wigorn. ann. 975.—Matt. Westmonast. Lib. III. c. 18.—Chron. Winton. (Spelman. I. 490-2).
[421] Matt. Westmonast. Lib. III. c. 18. Henry of Huntingdon, however (Lib. V. ann. 978), who, as a secular priest and the son of a priest, did not look upon the labors of St. Dunstan with much favor, insinuates that the accident was intended to foreshow that the assembled wisdom and power of England were about to fall similarly from the grace of God.
[422] Haddan & Stubbs I. 286.
[423] Privileg. Reg. Ethelredi (Spelman. I. 504).
[424] Ælfrici Canon. c. i.-viii. (Thorpe, II. 345). “Quasi periculosum non esset sacerdotem vivere more conjugati. Sed dicetis eum haud posse carere muliebribus servitiis. Respondeo, quonam pacto vitam transegerunt sancti olim viri absque femina vel uxore,” &c. (Spelman I. 573).—Spelman’s MS. was defective; that in Thorpe is perfect.
[425] Ælfric’s Pastoral Epistle, c. 32, 33 (Thorpe, II. 377).
[426] Omnes ministros Dei, præsertim sacerdotes, obsecramus et docemus, ut Deo obedientes, castitatem colant, et contra iram Domini se hoc modo muniant et tueantur. Certius enim norint quod non habeant debite ob aliquam coitus causam uxoris consortium. In more tamen est, ut quidam duas, quidam plures habeat; et nonnullus quamvis eam dimiserit quam nuper habuit, aliam tamen, ipsa vivente, accipit, quod nulla Christianorum lege est permissum. Dimittens autem et castitatem recolens, e cœlo assequetur misericordiam, in mundo etiam venerationem, adeo ut juribus et tributis habeatur Thaini dignus cum in vita tum in funere. Qui autem ordinis sui regulam abdicaverit, omni cum apud Deum tum apud homines gratia exuatur.—Concil. Ænham. c. 2. (Spelman. I. 514-5).
I give the translation of Spelman, as being more faithful in spirit, although less literal than that of Thorpe; for though the expression “wifes gemanan” may not be especially limited to wifely relations, yet the whole tenor of the passage shows that the women concerned were not merely concubines, but were entitled to the consideration of legal wives.
The thane-right promised to those who should reform their lives was one of the recognized privileges of the church. In a list of wer-gilds, anterior to the period under consideration by about a century, the wer-gild for the priest—“mæsse-þegnes” is the same as that for the secular noble—“woruld-þegnes” (Thorpe, I. 187).
[427] “Munecas and mynecena canonicas and nunnan” (Concil. Ænham. c. 1). Spelman thinks that the mynecena were perhaps the wives or concubines of monks (Concil. I. 530). Mynecen is merely the feminine of munuc, a monk; Thorpe translates it as “mynchens,” and suggests that the “mynecena” were merely the younger nuns, not quite so strictly governed as the elder “nunnan.” To this opinion Bosworth (Dictionary, s. v. _nunne_) seems to incline. It would appear to be so from chapter XV. (be Mynecenan) of the “Institutes of Polity” (Thorpe, II. 322).
[428] Cnutes Domas c. VI. (Thorpe, I. 364).
[429] Cnutes Domas c. v. (Thorpe, I. 362). To appreciate the full weight of the privileges thus distributed, we should bear in mind how completely, in those times, the various classes of society were distinguished by the facilities afforded them of acquittal in cases of accusation, and by the graduated scale of fines established for injuries inflicted on them. These were most substantial advantages when the wer-gild, or blood-money, was the only safeguard guaranteed by law for life and limb, and were most important privileges of the aristocracy. This constitutes the thane-right alluded to in the council of Enham, and retained by the laws of Cnut, as attaching to priests who preserve their chastity. Thus “sacramentum presbyteri regulariter viventis tantumdem valeat sicut liberalis hominis” (Cnuti Leg. Sæcul. c. 128—ed. Kolderup-Rosenvinge)—the expression “liberalis homo” being, in this version, used for the “taynus” or thane of the other texts.
[430] Cnuti Leg. Eccles. c. 8, 9. (Kolderup-Rosenvinge, Hauniæ, 1826, p. 12).
[431] Institutes of Polity, &c., c. 16, 19, 23 (Thorpe, II. 325, 329, 337). It is observable that the words _wif_ and _cwene_ are used interchangeably to denote the consorts of priests.
[432] Lives of Edward the Confessor, pp. 60-1 (Chron. & Memor. of Gr. Brit.). In the same curious collection there is another life of Edward by a follower of Queen Edith and dedicated to her, the writer of which freely attributes the worst motives to the intrigues of the Norman monks in separating her from the king. See, for instance, his account of her immurement in the abbey of Wilton (Op. cit. p. 403).
Edward’s virginity is likewise attested by the MS. Monast. Ramesiens. (Spelman. I. 637)—“Cœlibem pudicitiæ florem, quem inter regni delicias et inter amplexus conjugales ... conservarat, virtutemque perpetuo floribus immiscuit paradisi.” In this, however, Edward only imitated the asceticism ascribed to the Emperor St. Henry II. and his Empress St. Cunegunda, half a century earlier.
[433] Chron. Centulens. Lib. IV. c. xxii. (D’Achery II. 345).
[434] Orderic. Vital. P. II. Lib. iv. c. 10.—The testimony of William of Malmesbury (De Gest. Regum Lib. III.) is equally emphatic.
[435] Lives of Edward the Confessor, p. 432.
[436] Burchardi Decret. Lib. III. c. 108-116.
[437] Synod. Ticinens. ann. 1022 c. 1, 2, 3, 4.
[438] Respons Imperatoris in Synod. Ticinens.
[439] Concil. Bituricens. ann. 1031 c. 5, 6, 8, 10.
[440] Quoniam infelicem habuit introitum, infeliciorem persensit exitum. Horrendum quippe referri turpitudo illius conversationis et vitæ.—Rad. Glabri Lib. V. c. 5.
[441] Johann. Chron. Angliæ, c. 47 (Ludewig Rel. Msctorum. XII. 145). Semper enim luxuriæ et carnalibus illecebris deditus fuit.
[442] P. Damiani Opusc. VI. c. 18.
[443] Annal. Barenses, ann. 1035.—Shortly after this, we hear of two bishops killed in battle (Ibid. ann. 1041).
[444] P. Damiani, loc. cit.
[445] Desiderii Dialog. de Mirac. S. Benedict. Lib. III. (Script. Rer. Italicor. V. 396).
[446] John, a disciple of St. Peter Damiani, in alluding to the prevailing twin vices of simony and marriage, says: “Quæ videlicet pestes tam perniciosa consuetudine prævaluerant, tamque impune totam ferme ecclesiam in omni Romano orbe fædaverant, ut vix jam reprehensorem, tamquam licite, formidarent.”—Vit. S. P. Damiani c. 16.
[447] Cosmæ Pragens. Chron. Boem. Lib. III. (Mencken. Script. Rer. German. III. p. 1782).
[448] Batthyani Leg. Eccles. Hung. I. 335.
[449] Adam. Bremens. Gest. Pontif. Hammaburg. Schol. ad cap. 29 Lib. III.
[450] Perhaps as suggestive an illustration of the morals and manners of the age as can well be given is afforded by a deed executed in 1055 by a noble count of Catalonia on the occasion of his marriage. He pledges himself not to cast off his bride, except for infidelity—such infidelity not being plotted for by him—and to secure the performance of this promise he places in the hands of his father-in-law four castles, to be held in pledge, subject to forfeiture in case of his violating the agreement. (Baluz. Capit. Francor. Append. Actor. Vet. No. 148.)
[451] Atton. Vit. S. Johannis Gualbert. c. 31.
[452] The popular feelings which greeted his interposition are well conveyed in the jingling verse addressed to him by a holy hermit—
Una Sunamitis nupsit tribus maritis; Rex Henrice, Omnipotentis vice, Solve connubium, triforme, dubium. (Annalista Saxo, ann. 1046.)
The invitation to interfere, however, was not needed. Henry’s prerogative as the representative of Charlemagne and Otho the Great was sufficient warrant, and his religious ardor an ample motive, without any special reference to his tribunal.
[453] Anon. de Episcop. Eichstett. c. 34 (Patrolog. T. 146, pp. 1021-2).
[454] It would be a work of supererogation to quote the innumerable evidences of this which crowd the pages of contemporary writers. The generalizing remark of Glaber will suffice—“Omnes quippe gradus ecclesiastici a maximo pontifice usque ad hostianum opprimuntur per suæ damnationis precium, ac juxta vocem Dominicam in cunctis grassatur spiritale latrocinium.”—Glab. Rodolph. Hist. Lib. V. c. 5.
[455] Damiani Lib. VIII. Epist. 3.
[456] Johannis Vit. B. P. Damiani c. 1.
[457] Alex. II. Epist. 15.
[458] Learning, on his death-bed, that he was not to be buried as a pope, he requested the prelates around him to place his coffin at the church-door securely fastened, and if the portals opened without human hands, it would be a sign that he should receive papal honors. It was done, when a gust of wind burst open the door and lifted the coffin from the bier (Martin. Fuldens. Chron. ann. 1046).
[459] Martin. Fuldens. ann. 1050.
[460] Damiani Opusc. VII. (Liber Gomorrhianus).—Some ten or twelve years later, Alexander II. obtained the manuscript from Damiani, under pretence of having it copied, but prudently locked it up and refused to return it. The saintly author complained bitterly of the deception thus practised upon him, which he unceremoniously characterized as a fraud (Damiani Lib. II. Epist. 6).
[461] The world can never know the long and silent suffering endured in the terrible self-combat of ardent natures in the solitude of the cloister. If many succumb, the indignation which Damiani and his class so freely bestow on the victims should be transferred rather to the system which produces them. A monk of the period has left us a vivid and curious picture of his own tortures in the endless struggle with the tempter; and the mental torments to which his fellow-unfortunates were exposed are aptly condensed in the simple tale of the Abbess Sarah, who for thirteen long years maintained her ground without shrinking from the ceaseless assaults of the enemy by continually invoking the aid of God—“Da mihi fortitudinem Deus!” (Othlon. de Tentat. suis P. I.). The hagiology of the church is full of legends, more or less veritable, of the sufferings of these martyrs and of their triumphs over the flesh, from the time of St. Ammonius, who, when less decisive measures failed, bored his flesh in many places with red-hot iron, and thus vanquished passion by suffering. A collection of these stories, more curious than decent, may be found admiringly detailed by Giraldus Cambrensis in his Gemma Ecclesiastica, Dist. II.
[462] Batthyani Leg. Eccles. Hung. I. 401.
[463] Adami Bremens. Gest. Pontif. Hammaburg. Lib. III. c. 29.—Annalista Saxo, ann. 1048.
[464] Adam. Bremens. loc. cit.
[465] Tunc quippe in Neustria, post adventum Normannorum, in tantum dissoluta erat castitas clericorum, ut non solum presbyteri sed etiam præsules libere uterentur toris concubinarum, et palam superbirent multiplici propagine filiorum ac filiarum ... Tandem ... Leo Papa ... in Gallias A. D. 1049 venit ... Tunc ibidem (Remis) generale concilium tenuit, et inter reliqua ecclesiæ commoda quæ instituit, presbyteris arma ferre et conjuges habere prohibuit. Arma quidem ferre presbyteri jam gratanter desiere, sed a pellicibus adhuc nolunt abstinere, nec pudicitiæ inhærere.—Orderic. Vital. P. II. Lib. V. c. 15.—This portion of the work of Ordericus was written about the year 1125.
Ibi vero simoniaci, tam populares quam clerici, presbyterique uxorati, persuasione sancti Hugonis, a catholicorum communione et ab ecclesiis eliminati sunt.—Alberic. Trium Fontium Chron. ann. 1049.
[466] Damiani Opusc. XVIII. Diss. ii. c. 7.—It was probably some vague recollection of this provision, combined with the regulations adopted at Pavia in 1022 (p. 178) that led Dr. Martin, one of the commissioners who presided at the trial of Archbishop Cranmer, to declare to that unhappy culprit that “his children were bondmen to the see of Canterbury.”—Strype, Memorials of Cranmer, Book III. chap. 27.
[467] Herman. Contract. Chron. ann. 1051.
[468] Muratori Annali, ann. 1053.
[469] S. Leonis PP. IX. Mirac. (Migne’s Patrolog. CXLIII. 525 sqq.)
[470] Humberti Card. contra Nicetam XXV. XXVI.
[471] Lambert. Schaffnab. ann. 1054.—Martin. Polon. ann. 1057.
[472] Leo. Marsic. Chron. Casinens. Lib. II. c. 97.
[473] Damiani Opusc. XVIII. Diss. ii. c. 6.
[474] Ibid.
[475] Ut nullus missam audiat presbyteri quem scit concubinam indubitanter habere aut subintroductam mulierem.—Concil. Roman. ann. 1059 c. 3.
Singularly enough, this clause is omitted in the synodical epistle addressed to the Gallic clergy, as given by Hugh of Flavigny, Chron. Lib. II. ann. 1059.
[476] How utterly this was opposed to the received dogmas and practice of the church can be seen from the decision of Nicholas I. on the same question—“Sciscitantibus vobis, si a sacerdote, qui sive comprehensus est in adulterio, sive de hoc fama sola respersus est, debeatis communionem suscipere, necne, respondemus: Non potest aliquis quantumcumque pollutus sit, sacramenta divina polluere, quæ purgatoria cunctarum remedia contagionum existunt.... Sumite, igitur, intrepide ab omni sacerdote Christi mysteria, quoniam omnia in fide purgantur” (Nicolai I. Epist. XCVII. c. 71). See also a similar decision in 727 by Gregory II. (Bonifacii Epist. CXXVI.).
The only adverse authority of this period that I have met with is the Penitential of Theodore of Canterbury, already referred to, prescribing rebaptism for those baptized by priests of known unchastity (Lib. II. cap. ii. § 12.—Haddan & Stubbs’s Councils, III. 192).
Damiani saw the danger to which a practice such as this exposed the church, and lifted up his voice to prevent the evil results—
Audite etiam, laici, Qui Christo famulamini; Pro ullo unquam crimine, Pastores non despicite. (Carmen ccxxii.)
and when, about the year 1060, the Florentines refused the ministrations of their bishop, whom they were determined from other causes to eject, he reproved them warmly, adducing the only reasonable view of the question, “quod Spiritus Sanctus per improbi ministerium dare potest sua charismata” (Opusc. XXX. c. 2).
Simoniacal priests as well as concubinary ones were included in the ban, and when, in 1049, Leo IX. commenced his vigorous persecution of simony, there arose a belief that ordination received at hands tainted with that sin was null and void. This was promptly stigmatized as a heresy, and Damiani’s untiring pen was employed in combating it. He argued the question very thoroughly and keenly when it was under debate by a synod, and succeeded in procuring its condemnation (Opusc. VI. c. 12).
The prohibition, first proclaimed by Nicholas II. and finally enforced by Gregory VII., caused no little trouble in the church. Towards the close of the century, Urban II. found himself obliged to discuss the question, and in an epistle to Lucius, provost of the church of St. Juventius at Pavia, he admits that the sacraments administered by guilty priests are uncorrupted, yet he approves of their rejection in order to stimulate the clergy to virtue, and even declares that those who receive them, except under instant and pressing necessity, are guilty of idolatry (“nisi forte sola morte interveniente, utpote ne sine baptismate vel communione quilibet humanis rebus excedat; eis, inquam, in tantum obsunt, ut veri idolatræ sint”—Urbani II. Epist. 273)—a decision the logic of which is not readily apprehended. St. Anselm of Canterbury assents to the doctrine, but places it in a more reasonable and practical shape—“non quo quis ea quæ tractent contemnenda, sed tractantes execrandos existimet” (Epist. VIII.). The consequences of such a system, however, if strictly carried out, would have been most disastrous to the church, and when the zeal of Hildebrand became forgotten his injunctions were overruled. The century was scarcely out before Honorius of Autun maintained most positively that Christ operates through the hands of the vilest as well as of the most holy ministers, provided only they are orthodox in faith (Eucharistion c. vi.—Pez, Thesaur. II. i. 355). About 1150, however, Geroch of Reichersperg declares that he considered Gregory’s commands as still in force, and that he paid no more attention to the masses of concubinary priests than if they were so many Pagans (Gerhohi Dial. de Differentia Cleri—Pez, Thesaur. II. ii. 463). Yet before the end of the twelfth century, Lucius III. had returned to the policy of Nicholas I.—“Sumite ergo ab omni sacerdote intrepide Christi mysteria, quia omnia in fide Christi purgantur” (Post Lateran. Concil. P. L. c. 38), the positiveness of which was not much affected by the subtle distinctions which he endeavored to draw between crimes notorious and tolerated. Yet St. Thomas Aquinas, on the other hand, affirmed that it was a mortal sin to assist at the Mass celebrated by a priest who was notoriously unchaste (Pontas, Dict. de Cas de Conscience II. 1445). The church, however, gradually returned to the old doctrine and practice. The policy of Gregory was condemned as a heresy when adopted by the followers of Arnold of Brescia (Bonacursi Vit. Hæreticorum—D’Achery I. 214) and an austere priest, Albero of Mercke, near Cologne, who taught it was promptly silenced (Anon. adv. Alberonis errores—Martene Ampl. Coll. IX. 1251). In 1292 the council of Aschaffenburg anathematized those who “præsumptione dampnabili” taught the heresy that priests in mortal sin could not perform the sacred mysteries, and it decided “licite ergo a quocumque sacerdote ab ecclesia tolerato, divina mysteria audiantur et alia recipiantur ecclesiastica sacramenta” (Concil. Schafnaburg. ann. 1292 can. i.—Hartzheim IV. 7). And when Wickliffe and Huss undertook to carry out the dicta of Nicholas II. and Gregory VII. to their legitimate conclusions, the policy was at once recognized as a heresy of the worst character and most destructive consequence. Thus in 1491 a Synod of Bamberg condemns as heretics those who refuse to receive the ministrations of sinful priests.—Synod. Bamberg. ann. 1491 Tit. xliv. (Ludewig. Script. Rer. German. I. 1241-2).
[477] Quicumque sacerdotum, diaconorum, subdiaconorum ... concubinam palam duxerit vel ductam non reliquerit, ... præcipimus et omnino contradicimus, ut missam non cantet, neque evangelium vel epistolam ac missam legat, neque in presbyterio ad divina officia cum iis qui præfatæ constitutioni obedientes fuerint, maneat; neque partem ab ecclesia suscipiat.—Concil. Roman. ann. 1059 c. 3.
It is evident here that the opprobrious epithet “concubine” is applied to those who were as legally wives as it was possible to make them. Damiani, indeed, admits it, and even intimates that concubine was too honorable a word to be applied to the wives of priests—“Illorum vero clericorum feminas, qui matrimonia nequeunt legali jure contrahere, non conjuges sed concubinas potius, sive prostibula congrue possumus appellare” (Opusc. XVIII. Diss. iii. c. 2). After this period it will be found that the wives of priests were rarely dignified with the title of “uxores,” although ordination was not yet an impediment destructive of marriage.
It is as well to observe here that at this period and for some time later the position of the concubine had not the odium attaching to it by modern manners, and this should be borne in mind when reviewing the morals of the Middle Ages. The connection was a recognized and almost a legal one, following the traditions of the Roman law, by which it was legitimate and permanent, so long as the parties respectively remained unmarried. A man could not have a wife and concubine at the same time (Pauli Sentent. II. 20), nor could he legally have two concubines together (Novel. XVIII. c. 5). Not only were such regulations thus promulgated by Christian emperors, but the relationship was duly recognized by the Christian church. The first council of Toledo, in 398, enjoined upon the faithful “tantum aut unius mulieris, aut uxoris aut concubinæ, ut ei placuerit, sit conjunctione contentus” (Concil. Toletan. I. c. 17), showing that either connection apparently was legitimate, and this is quoted at the commencement of the tenth century, as still in force, by Regino (De Discip. Eccles. Lib. II. c. 100). A half century later, about 450, Leo I. was actually appealed to to decide whether a man who quitted a concubine and took a wife committed bigamy—which Leo reasonably enough answered in the negative (Leon. Epist. XC. c. 5). The principle of the Roman law was still the rule of the church in the 9th century, for a Roman synod held by Eugenius II. in 826 declared “Ut non liceat uno tempore duas habere uxores, uxoremve et concubinam. De illo vero qui cum uxore concubinam habet, præcipit, ut si admonitus eam a se abjicere noluerit, communione privetur.” (Pertz, Legum T. II. P. ii. p. 12.) The view entertained of the matter at the time under consideration may be gathered from a canon of the councils of Rome, in 1052 and 1063, suspending from communion the layman who had a wife and concubine at the same time (Concil. Roman. ann. 1059 c. 12: ann. 1063 c. 10)—whence we may deduce that a concubine alone was hardly considered irregular. During the latter part of the succeeding century we find the concubine a recognized institution in Scotland, for the laws of William the Lion, after stating that the wife was not bound to reveal the crimes of her husband, adds “De concubina vero et de familia domus non est ita; quia ipsi tenentur revelare maleficia magistri sui, aut debent a servitio suo recedere” (Statut. Willelmi c. XIX. § 9). In England, late in the thirteenth century, Bracton speaks of the “concubina legitima” as entitled to certain rights and consideration (Lib. III. Tract. ii. c. 28 § 1, and Lib. IV. Tract. vi. c. 8 § 4). In Spain, at the same period, the son of an unmarried noble by a concubine, was noble (Juan Perez de Lara, in Arch. Seld. 130, Bib. Bodl.), and in the Danish code of Waldemar II., which was in force from 1280 to 1683, there is a provision that a concubine kept openly for three years shall be held to be a legitimate and legal wife (Leg. Cimbric. Lib. I. cap. xxvii. Ed. Ancher); while the elaborate provisions for the division of estates between legitimate and illegitimate children, contained in the code compiled by Andreas Archbishop of Lunden, in the 13th century, show that certain legal rights were recognized in the latter (Legg. Scan. Provin. Ed. Thorsen pp. 110-2). Indeed, in the Norwegian law of that period, when the king left no legitimate sons the crown descended to illegitimates (Jarnsida, Kristendoms-Balkr, c. III.). In Bigorre, concubines, under the name of _Massipia_, were recognized by law, and formal notarial contracts were drawn up, as late as the close of the fifteenth century, specifying the price to be paid and the duration of the connection; and when the man was already married he sometimes engaged to marry the _massipia_ in case of his wife’s death during the term (Lagrèze, Hist. du Droit dans les Pyrénées, Paris, 1867, p. 377). We must therefore bear in mind that, until the rule of sacerdotal celibacy became rigorously enforced, the “concubina” of the canons generally means a wife, and that for some time afterwards the concubine was by no means necessarily the shameless woman implied under the modern acceptation of the term.
[478] Hujus autem constitutionis maxime fuit auctor Hildebrandus, tunc Romanæ ecclesiæ archidiaconus, hæreticis maxime infestus.—Bernaldi Chron. ann. 1061. Benzo declares, in his slashing way, stigmatizing Hildebrand as a Sarabite, or wandering monk, “De cetero pascebat suum Nicholaum Prandellus in Lateranensi palatio, quasi asinum in stabulo. Nullum erat opus Nicholaitæ, nisi per verbum Sarabaitæ” (Comment. de Reb. Henr. IV. Lib. VII. c. 2). The verses of Damiani on the influence of Hildebrand are too well known to quote.
[479]
... Hic [Nicholaus] ecclesiastica propter Ad partes illas tractanda negotia venit; Namque sacerdotes, levitæ, clericus omnis Hac regione palam se conjugio sociabant. Concilium celebrans ibi, Papa faventibus illi Præsulibus centum jus ad synodale vocatis, Ferre Sacerdotes monet, altarisque ministros Arma pudicitiæ, vocat hos et præcipit esse Ecclesiæ sponsos, quia non est jure sacerdos Luxuriæ cultor: sic extirpavit ab illis Partibus uxores omnino presbyterorum.
(Gulielmi Appuli de Normann. Lib. II.)
[480] Concil. Turon. ann. 1060 c. 6.
[481] Porro autem nos contra divina mandata, personarum acceptores, in minoribus quidam sacerdotibus luxuriæ inquinamenta persequimur; in episcopis autem, quod nimis absurdum est, per silentii tolerantiam veneramur.—Damiani Opusc. XVII. c. 1.
[482] Sanctis eorum femoribus volui seras apponere. Tentavi genitalibus sacerdotum (ut ita loquar) continentiæ fibulas adhibere.... Hujus autem capituli nudam saltem promissionem tremulis prolatam labiis difficilius extorquemus. Primo, quia fastigium castitatis attingere se posse desperant; deinde quia synodali se plectendos esse sententia propter luxuriæ vitium non formidant. ... Si enim malum hoc esset occultum, fuerat fortassis utcunque ferendum; sed, ah scelus! omni pudore postposito, pestis hæc in tantum prorupit audaciam, ut per ora populi volitent loca scortantium, nomina concubinarum, socerorum quoque vocabula simul et socruum ... postremo, ubi omnis dubietas tollitur, uteri tumentes et pueri vagientes etc.—Damiani Opusc. XVII.
[483] Decret. Nicolai PP. c. 3, 4 (Baluz. et Mansi II. 118-9).
[484] “Dogmatizatis enim sacri ministros altaris jure posse mulieribus permisceri ... Jam vero quod impudenter asseritis, ministros altaris conjugio debere sociari etc.”—Damiani Lib. V. Epist. 13.
[485] Ad Cadaloum Lib. I. Epist. 20.
[486] In 1060, Cardinal Humbert of Silva-Candida, in combating the prevailing vice of simony, made use of this argument, reasoning that an immoral priest may be suspended or may be tolerated in hope of amendment, but if he trenches on heresy, there can be neither hope nor mercy for him (Humbert. Cardinal. adv. Simoniac. Lib. III. c. 43). Damiani applied this to the defenders of marriage with all his vigor. “Qui nimirum dum corruunt, impudici; dum defendere nituntur, merito judicantur hæretici” (Opusc. XVIII. Diss. ii. c. 8). “Nam cum peccat homo, quasi in puteum labitur; cum vero peccata defendit, os putei super eum, ne pateat egressus, urgetur ... Hoc autem inter peccatorem et hæreticum distat: quia peccator est qui delinquit, hæreticus autem qui peccatum per pravum dogma defendit” (Opusc. XXIV. Præf.).
[487] Opusc. XXVII. Diss. ii. c. 8.
[488] Opusc. XVIII. Diss. ii. c. 3.
[489] Obeunte igitur pellice, viduatus adjecit iterare conjugium. Quid plura? Confœderat sibi quasi tabularum lege prostibulum, amicorum atque confinium congregat nuptiali more conventum, epulaturis etiam totius affluentæ providet apparatum—Damiani Opusc. XVIII. Diss. ii. c. 6.
[490] Nec vos terreat quod forte, non dicam fidei sed perfidæ, vos annulus subarrhavit: quod rata et monimenta dotalia notarius quasi matrimonii jure conscripsit; quod juramentum ad confirmandam quodammodo conjuii copulam utrinque processit. Totum hoc quod videlicet apud alios est conjugii firmamentum, inter vos vanum judicatur et frivolum—Opusc. XVIII. Diss. ii. c. 7.
[491] Opusc. XVIII. Diss. ii. Præf.
[492] Opusc. XVIII. Diss. ii.
[493] Opusc. XVIII. Diss. iii. c. 1, 2.
[494] Opusc. XVIII. Diss. iii. c. 3.
[495] Opusc. XVIII. Diss. i.
[496] Alex. II. Epist. 125.—Batthyani (Leg. Eccles. Hungar. I. 407) remarks that this lenity arose from the fact that otherwise divine service would have ceased—“omnes ecclesiæ a divinis officiis vacassent.”
It is also observable that subdeacons are not included in this prohibition—a remarkable exemption, since by this time their subjection to the law of celibacy had become a settled rule in the Roman church. I may here remark that I had collected considerable material to trace the varying practice with regard to the subdiaconate, but as it involves no principle, merely depending in earlier times upon the local custom as to the functions of that grade, the discussion would scarcely repay the space that it would occupy.
[497] De manifestis loquimur; secretorum autem cognitor et judex Deus est.—Alex. II. Epist. 118.
[498] Cenomanensem electum, pro eo quod filius sacerdotis dicitur, si cæteræ virtutes in eum conveniunt, non rejicimus; sed, suffragantibus meritis, patienter suscipimus; non tamen ut hoc pro regula in posterum assumatur, sed ad tempus ecclesiæ periculo consulitur.—Gratian. Dist. LVI. c. 13.
[499] Nam pro eo quod filius sacerdotis dicitur, si cæteræ virtutes in eum conveniant, non rejicimus, sed suffragantibus meritis connivendo, eum recipimus.—Alex. II. Epist. 133. Baronius attributes to this the date of 1071.
The contrast between the weakness of Alexander and the unbending rigidity of his successor, Hildebrand, is well shown by comparing this unlimited acceptance of priestly offspring with the refusal of the latter to permit the elevation of a clerk requested by both his bishop and the King of Aragon, simply because he was illegitimate, although in other respects admitted to be unexceptionable (Gregor. VII. Lib. II. Epist. 50). We have already seen that even amid the license which prevailed during the early part of the century, some German bishops habitually refused orders to the sons of priests.
[500] Alex. II. Epist. 112.
[501] I think that there is too much concurrent testimony to this effect to admit a reasonable doubt that the Albigenses were Manichæans. I may return to them hereafter, and therefore will not discuss the point here. As regards the earlier heretics, however, I may mention the following contemporary authorities:—
With respect to those of Toulouse and Orleans, the “Fragmentum Historiæ Aquitaniæ” (Pithœi Hist. Franc. Script. p. 82) says: “Eo tempore decem ex canonicis sanctæ crucis Aurelianis probati sunt esse Manichæi, quos rex Robertus quum nollent ad Catholicam converti fidem, igne cremari jussit. Simili modo apud Tholosam inventi sunt Manichæi, et ipsi igne cremati sunt: et per diversas Occidentis partes Manichæi exorti per latibula sese occultare cœperunt”—and their errors are thus specified in the “Fragmentum Hist. Franc.” (Op. cit. p. 84) “Ii dicebant non posse aliquem in baptismate spiritum sanctum suscipere, et post criminale peccatum veniam non promereri; impositionem manuum nihil posse conferre; nuptias spernebant; episcopum affirmabant non posse ordinare, &c.”
In the Artesian synod, held in 1025 to condemn those of Cambrai, the tenth canon is directed against their hostility to marriage (Labbei et Coleti XI. 1177-8).—See also the prefatory letter of Gerard, Bishop of Cambrai—“Conjugatos nequaquam ad regnum pertinere”—(Hartzheim Concil. German. III. 68).
Concerning those executed at Goslar in 1052—“Ibique quosdam hæreticos, inter alia pravi erroris dogmata Manichæa secta omnis esum animalis exsecrantes, consensu cunctorum, ne hæretica scabies latius serpens plures inficeret, in patibulis suspendi jussit.”—Herman. Contract. ann. 1052.
About 1100 Radolphus Ardens describes the Manichæans who infested the territory of Agen, and recapitulates their doctrines as embracing dualism, abhorrence of animal food and of marriage, rejection of the Old Testament and part of the New, disbelief in the Eucharist, in baptism and resurrection, &c.—“Dicunt enim tantum flagitium esse accedere ad uxorem, quantum ad matrem vel ad filiam”—Radulf. Ardent. T. I. P. ii. Homil. 19.
The council of Toulouse, held by Calixtus II. in 1119, adopted a canon condemning those who objected to the Eucharist, priesthood, and legitimate marriage, showing that Manichæism was unextinguished in Languedoc.—Udalr. Babenb. Cod. Lib. II. c. 303.
In 1146 a synod at Cologne tried certain heretics, but before the examination was concluded the unfortunates were seized by the rabble and burned “et quod magis mirabile est, ipsi tormentum ignis non solum cum patientia, sed et cum lætitia introierunt et sustinuerunt.” Their Manichæism is manifested by their tenets concerning marriage—“De baptismo nostro non curant: Nuptias damnant.... In cibis suis vetant omne genus lactis, et quod inde conficitur, et quidquid ex coitu procreatur”—Narratio Everwini Præpositi (Hartzheim. III. 353-4). Cf. Bernardi Serm. 65, 66, in Cantica.
The accusations so freely disseminated against them for the purpose of stirring up popular indignation—such as that in their conventicles, after religious exercises, the lights were extinguished, and the congregation abandoned themselves to indiscriminate excesses—are, of course, without foundation. It is instructive to observe that precisely the same scandals were asserted of the early Christians (Tertull. Apologet. c. vii.)—so little does human nature change with the lapse of centuries.
[502] It is scarcely worth while to more than refer to the assertion of mediæval Milanese chroniclers that Eriberto married a noble lady named Useria. Puricelli (Muratori Script. Rer. Ital. V. 122-3) has sufficiently demonstrated its improbability. He does not, however, allude to the argument derivable from the fact that Eriberto’s name is signed to the proceedings of the council of Pavia in 1022, where priestly marriage was so severely condemned.
[503] Gualvaneo Flamma, Chron. Mag. c. 763.—Landulph. Senior. Mediolan. Hist. Lib. III. c. 2.
[504] Landulf. Senior. L. II. c. 35.
The writer was a partisan of the married clergy; but his description is confirmed by the testimony which Damiani bears (ante, p. 203) to the good character of the married clergy of Savoy. Still, there may be some truth in the counter statement of an opponent, S. Andrea of Vallombrosa, a disciple of S. Arialdo—“Nam alii cum canibus et accipitribus huc illucque pervagantes, suum venationi lubricæ famulatum tradebant; alii vero tabernarii et nequam villici, alii impii usurarii existebant; cuncti fere aut cum publicis uxoribus sive scortis, suam ignominiose ducebant vitam.... Universi sic sub simoniaca hæresi tenebantur impliciti.”—Vit. S. Arialdi c. I. No. 7.
The Milanese defended their position not only by Scripture texts, but also by a decision which they affirmed was rendered by St. Ambrose, to whom the question of the permissibility of sacerdotal marriage had been referred by the pope and bishops. Of course the story was without foundation, but singularly enough, the Milanese clung to it long after the subject had ceased to be open to discussion. Puricelli has investigated the matter with his usual conscientious industry, and shows the repetition of the legend not only by Datius and Landulfus Senior in the eleventh century, but by Gualvaneo Flamma in the thirteenth, by the author of the Flos Florum, by Pietro Agario and by Bernardino Corio in the fifteenth, and by Tristano Calco in the sixteenth century—the two latter falling in consequence under the revision of the Index. (Script. Rer. Ital. V. 122-3.)
[505] Milan long retained its bad preeminence as a nest of heresy. When Frederic II., in 1236, delayed his promised crusade to subdue the rebellious Milanese, his excuse to the pope was that he ought not to leave behind him unbelievers worse than those whom he would seek across the seas. “Cum ... jam zizania segetes incipiant suffocare per civitates Italicas, præcipue Mediolanensium, transire ad Saracenos hostiliter expugnandos, et illos incorrectos pertransire, esset vulnus infixo ferro fomentis superficialibus delinire, et cicatricem deformam non medelam procurare,” and Matthew Paris calls Milan “omnium hæreticorum, Paterinorum, Luciferanorum, Publicanorum, Albigensium, Usurariorum refugium ac receptaculum.”—Hist. Angl. ann. 1236.
[506] Arnulf. Gest. Archiep. Mediolan. Lib. III. c. 9.—Landulf. Sen. Lib. III. c. 10.
Benzo, the uncompromising imperialist, always alludes to the papal party when he speaks of the Patarini—that term not having yet assumed the significance which it subsequently obtained. He accuses Anselmo di Badagio of being the author of the troubles—“primitus Patariam invenit, arcanum domini sui archiepiscopi cui juraverat inimicis aperuit. Abusus est etiam quædam monacha, cum Landulfino suo proprio consobrino.”—Comment. de Reb. Henric. IV. Lib. VII. c. 2.—The latter accusation can no doubt be set down as one of the baseless scandals so freely cast from one party to the other in those turbulent times.
[507] Arnulf. Lib. III. c. 10.—Landulf. Sen. Lib. III. c. 9.
[508] Arnulf. Lib. III. c. 11.
[509] Landulf. Sen. Lib. III. c. 13.
[510] “Quod Mediolanensis civitas tunc in seditionem versa, repentinum utique nostrum minabatur interitum.”—The peril must have been serious, for even Landolfo, whose nerves were seasoned by constant civic strife, made a vow to become a monk if he should escape—his delay in fulfilling which, after the danger was past, called forth the urgent remonstrances of Damiani.—Damiani Opusc. XLII. cap. 1.
[511] Their defence was “non debere Ambrosianam ecclesiam Romanis legibus subjacere, nullumque judicandi vel disponendi jus Romano pontifici in illa sede competere”.—Damiani Opusc. V.
[512] Nicolaitarum quoque hæresim nihilominus condemnamus, et non modo presbyteros sed et diaconos et subdiaconos ab uxorum et concubinarum fædo consortio, nostris studiis, in quantum nobis possibilitas fuerit, sub eodem quo supra testimonio arcendos esse promittimus.—Damiani Opusc. V.
[513] Damiani op. cit.—Damiani’s account is addressed to the pope, who, he seems to think, may be dissatisfied with the lenity which permitted heretics to return to the church on such easy terms, and he is at some pains to justify himself for his mildness.
[514] Alexand. II. Epist. 1.
[515] His followers claimed for him the honors of martyrdom. He was reverenced accordingly, and Muratori gravely asserts that the evidence in his favor is indubitable.
[516] Arnulf. Lib. III. c. 13, 14.—Landulf. Sen. Lib. III. c. 13, 14.
To this period may probably be attributed two epistles of Alexander II. (Epistt. 93, 94) to the clergy and people of Milan, informing both parties that a Roman synod had recently prohibited incontinent priests from officiating, and had ordered the people not to attend at their ministrations. He adds that those who abandon their functions to cleave to their wives, must be forced also to give up their benefices.
[517] Arnulf. Lib. III. c. 15.—Landulf. Sen. Lib. III. c. 15.—Arnulfus alludes to a dispute concerning the litany, which complicated the quarrel. The troubles even invaded the monasteries, for Erlembaldo procured the forcible ejection of sundry abbots appointed by Guido.
[518] Arnulf. Lib. III. c. 18.—Landulf. Lib. III. c. 29. In 1090 the remains of St. Arialdo were translated by Archbishop Anselmo IV. to the church of St. Denis, and Muratori quotes from Alciati a curious statement to the effect that in 1508 Louis XII. removed them to Paris in mistake for the relics of St. Denis the Areopagite, the Parisians in his time still venerating them as those of the latter saint.
About the time of Arialdo’s martyrdom, Cremona must have been won over to the cause of the reformers, for in 1066 we find Alexander II. addressing the “religiosis clericis et fidelibus laicis” of that city, thanking God that they had been moved to extirpate the simoniacal and Nicolitan heresies, and commanding that in future all those in orders who contaminated themselves with women should be degraded.—Alex. II. Epist. 36.
[519] Arnulf. Lib. III. c. 18, 19.
[520] Landulf. Sen. Lib. III. c. 20.
[521] Arnulf. Lib. III. c. 19, 20, 21, 22, 23.—Landulf. Sen. Lib. III. c. 28.
[522] Arnulf. Lib. III. c. 23; Lib. IV. c. 2, 3, 4.
[523] Arnulf. Lib. IV., Lib. V. c. 2, 5, 9.—Landulf. Sen. Lib. III. c. 29, Lib. IV. c. 2.—Lambert. Schafnab. ann. 1077.
Erlembaldo was canonized by Urban II. towards the end of the century. Muratori (Annal. ann. 1085) styles Tedaldo “capo e colonna maestra degli Scismatici di Lombardia.”
[524] Landulf. Sen. Lib. III. c. 21, 22, 23, 24, 25.
[525] Gregor. II. Regist. Lib. I. Epistt. 25, 26, 27.
[526] Maritos ab uxoribus separat; scorta pudicis conjugibus; stupra, incestus, adulteria, casto præfert connubio; populares adversus sacerdotes, vulgus adversum episcopos concitat.—Comit. Ticinens. ann. 1076 (Goldast. III. 314).
[527] To this period is no doubt referable a fragment of a decretal addressed by Urban II. to Anselmo, Archbishop of Milan, giving him instructions as to the ceremony of restoring to the church the ecclesiastics who were to be reconciled (Ivon. Decret. P. VI. c. 407—Urbani II. Epist. 74)—showing that Milan had submitted, and that her clergy were forced to seek absolution and obey the canons. It was this revolution in Lombardy that drove the anti-pope Clement III. from Rome.
[528] Item heresis Nicolaitarum, id est incontinentium subdiaconorum, diaconorum et præcipue sacerdotum inretractabiliter damnata est, ut deinceps de officio se non intromittant qui in illa heresi manere non formidant; nec populus eorum officia ullo modo recipiat, si ipsi Nicolaitæ contra hæc interdicta ministrare præsumant.—Bernald. Constant. ann. 1095.
The very terms of this canon, however, show that “Nicolitism” was still an existing fact.
[529] Tamburini, Storia generale dell’ Inquizione, Milano, 1862, T. I. pp. 307-9.
[530] S. Leon. IX. Epist. 55.
[531] Vit. S. Anselmi Lucensis.—In his collection of canons, St. Anselmo is careful to accumulate authorities justifying his course, and condemning his antagonists.—S. Anselmi Collect. Canon. Lib. VIII. c. 2, 4, 5, 7, 8, 10.
[532] Bernald. Constant. ann. 1089.
[533] Cujus prudentia, non solum in Italia sed etiam in Theutonicis partibus refrenata est sacerdotum incontinentia, scilicet quod prædecessores ejus in Italia prohibuerunt, hoc ipse in aliis ecclesiæ catholicæ partibus prohibere studiosus attemptavit.—Bertold. Constant, ann. 1073.—Also Bernald. Constant, ann. 1073.
Gregorius ... connubia clericorum a subdiaconatu et supra, per totum orbem Romanum edicto decretali, in æternum prohibuit.—Gotefrid. Viterb. Chron. P. XVII.
Sed et datis decretis clericorum a subdiaconatu et supra connubia in toto orbe Romano cohibuit.—Otton. Frisingen. Chron. Lib. VI. c. 34.
Eodem quoque tempore canones antiqui de continentia ministrorum sacri altaris innovari novis accedentibus præceptis cœperunt, per hunc Urbanum Papam et prædecessores suos Gregorium VII. et Nicholaum II. atque Alexandrum II.—Chron. Reichersperg. ann. 1098.
Tempore illo cum Gregorius qui et Hiltebrant Romani pontificatus jura disponeret, hoc decretum quidem antiquitus promulgatum, nunc autem innovatum est, ut videlicet omnes in sacris ordinibus constituti, presbyteri scilicet et diaconi, a cohabitationibus feminarum se, ut decet, cohiberent, aut ab officio cessarent.—Gest. Trevir. Archiep. cap. XXX. (Martene Ampliss. Collect. IV. 174).
Hoc tamen ab eo tempore fuit introductum ut nullus ordinaretur in presbyterum conjugatus: et ordinandi omnes castitatem promittere compellantur coram ordinante.—Chron. Hirsaug. ann. 1074.
One chronicler, however, attributes the reform to Alexander II. “Constituit etiam ut nullus presbyter sive diaconus vel subdiaconus, uxorem habeat, sive concubinam in occidentali ecclesia, sed ut sint casti.”—Chron. S. Ægid. in Brunswig. ann. 1071.
[534] Paul Bernried. Vit. Gregor VII. c. ii. § 20.
[535] Pauli Bernried. Vit. Gregor. VII. c. iii. § 26.
Even Gregory, however, was not equal to his contemporary Hugh, Bishop of Grenoble, who, during fifty-three years spent in the active duties of his calling, never saw the face of a woman, except that of an aged mendicant.—Rolevink Fascic. Temp. ann. 1074.
The fanciful purity which came to be considered requisite to the episcopal office is well illustrated by the case of Faricius, Abbot of Abingdon, who was elected to the see of Canterbury. His suffragans refused his consecration because he was a skilful leech—“tunc electus est Faricius ad archiepiscopatum, sed episcopus Lincolniensis et episcopus Salesburiensis obstiterunt, dicentes non debere archiepiscopum urinas mulierum inspicere” (De Abbat. Abbendon.—Chron. Abingdon. II. 287). The prejudice against the practice of physic as incompatible with the purity of an ecclesiastic was wide-spread and long-lived, as chronicled in the canons of numerous councils prohibiting it (e. g. Concil. Claromont. ann. 1130 c. 5)—but it was not always so. In 998 Theodatus, a monk of Corvey, received the bishopric of Prague from Otho III., as a reward for curing Boleslas I., Duke of Bohemia, of paralysis, by means of a bath of wine, herbs, spices, and three living black puppies four weeks old (Paulini Dissert. Hist. p. 198); and about the year 1200, Hubert Walter, Archbishop of Canterbury, bestowed the see of St. David’s on Geoffrey, Prior of Llanthony, his physician, whose skill had won his gratitude.—Girald. Cambrens. de Jur. et Stat. Menev. Eccles. Dist. VII.
[536] Gregor. VII. Regist. Lib. I. Epist. 30.
[537] Ut secundum instituta antiquorum canonum presbyteri uxores non habeant, habentes aut dimittant aut deponantur; nec quisquam omnino ad sacerdotium admittatur qui non in perpetuum continentiam vitamque cœlibem profiteatur.—Lambert. Hersfeldens. ann. 1074. Cf. Gregor. Epist. Extrav. 4.
[538] As regards Germany, Gregory, in 1074, sent two legates to Henry IV., who promulgated the canon in a national council; and the next year he followed this up by a legation empowered to forbid the laity from attending the offices of married priests. (Herman. Contract. ann. 1074-5.) His correspondence, however, shows that he did not rely alone on such measures, but that he also addressed the prelates directly.
[539] Lambert. Hersfeldens. ann. 1074.
[540] Novo exemplo et inconsiderato prejudicio, necnon et contra sanctorum patrum sententiam ... ex qua re tam grave scandalum in ecclesia oritur, quod antea sancta ecclesia nullius hæresis schismati tam graviter est attrita.—Chron. Turonens. (Martene Ampl. Collect. V. 1007.)
[541] Gregor. VII. Epist. extrav. 4, 12, 13.—Bernald. pro Gebhardo Episc. Apologet. c. 4, 5, 6, 7.
[542] Vit. S. Altmanni.—Hinc capitulum illud de incontinentia sacerdotum a tam invicto propugnatore castitatis dissimulatum non approbatum remansit.
[543] Gregor. VII. Epist. extrav. 12.—Lambert. Hersfeld. ann. 1074-5-6.—Udalr. Babenb. Cod. Lib. II. c. 132.—Gregor. Regist. Lib. II. Epist. 29.—Goldast. Constit. Imp. I. 237.
An encyclical letter of Siegfrid, in 1075, states that Gregory had sent to his diocese commissioners to reform the immorality of the clergy, and that they had labored earnestly, but fruitlessly, to accomplish the task by a liberal use of suspension and excommunication. He had thereupon reported to the pope the scandal and infamy of his church, when Gregory, considering the multitude of the transgressors, counselled moderation. Siegfrid therefore orders all incorrigible offenders to be suspended and sent to him for judgment. (Hartzheim Concil. German. III. 175.)—Hartzheim also (III. 749) gives, under date of 1077, another letter from Siegfrid to Gregory, in which he promises to do his best in reforming the clergy, but advises moderation towards those whose weakness merits compassion.
[544] See, for instance, Lib. I. Epist. 30; Lib. II. Epistt. 25, 55, 61, 62, 64, 66, 67, 68; Lib. III. Epist. 4; Lib. IV. Epistt. 10, 11, 20; Lib. VII. Epist. 1; Epistt. extrav. 4, 12, 13, etc.
[545] His præcipimus vos nullo modo obedire, vel eorum præceptis consentire, sicut ipsi apostolicæ sedis præceptis non obediunt, neque auctoritati sanctorum patrum consentiunt.—Gregor. VII. Epist. extrav. 14. “Omnibus clericis et laicis in regno Teutonicorum constitutis.”
[546] Regist. Lib. II. Epist. 45.
Letters conceived in the same spirit are extant, addressed to the principal laymen of Chiusi in Tuscany, to the Count and Countess of Flanders, &c. (Lib. II. Epist. 47; Lib. IV. Epistt. 10, 11.)
[547] Martene et Durand. Thesaur. I. 218.—Hugon. Flavin. Chron. Lib. II. ann. 1079.—Cf. Chron. Augustinens. ann. 1075. Theodoric was naturally forced in the end to take a decided stand against Gregory. See his letter in Goldastus, T. I. p. 236, and the account of his episcopate in the Gesta Trevir. Archiep. (Martene Ampl. Collect. IV. 175-8).
[548] Udalr. Babenb. Cod. Lib. II. cap. 162.
[549] Annalista Saxo, ann. 1076.
We have already seen (p. 142) that Nicholas I., in the ninth century, had expressly forbidden any popular interference with married priests, and it is a little singular to observe that his decretal on the subject is extracted by Ivo of Chartres (Decreti P. II. cap. 82) and presented as valid law, in less than a generation after the death of Gregory VII.
[550] The writer indignantly adds—“Si autem quæris talis fructus a qua radice pullulaverit, lex ad laicos promulgata, qua imperitis persuasum est conjugatorum sacerdotum missas et quæcumque per eos implentur mysteria fugienda esse, in reipublicæ nostræ ornatum illud adjecit.”—Martene et Durand. Thesaur. I. 230-1.
[551] Sigebert. Gemblac. ann. 1074.
[552] Pauli Bernried. Vit. Gregor. VII. No. 81, 107.
[553] Ibid. No. 105, 106, 107.
[554] Gregor. VII. Regist. Lib. IV. Epist. 20.
[555] Pauli Bernried. Vit. Gregor. VII. No. 87.—Ekkehard of Uraugen and the Annalista Saxo, however, in their accounts of these disturbances, attribute them to political rather than to ecclesiastical causes. The latter, no doubt, would hardly have been efficient without the former. The efforts of Henry to reduce the savage feudal nobles to order made him, throughout his reign, a favorite with the cities.
[556] Lambert. Hersfeld. ann. 1076.
[557] Hugon. Flaviniac. Lib. II.
[558] Ob hanc igitur causam, quia scilicet sanctam Dei ecclesiam castam esse volebat, liberam atque catholicam, quia de sanctuario Dei simoniacam et neophytorum hæresim et fedam libidinosæ contagionis pollutionem volebat expellere, membra diaboli cœperunt in eum insurgere, et usque ad sanguinem præsumpserunt in eum manus injicere.—Hugon. Flaviniac. Lib. II.
Eo vesaniæ imperatorem induxerat cæca sacerdotum (qui tunc frequentes apud eum erant) libido. Timebant enim si cum pontifice in gratiam rediret, actum esse de concubinis suis, quas illi pluris quam vel propriam salutem vel publicam pendebant honestatem.—Hieron. Emser Vit. S. Bennon. c. III. § 40.
Gregory’s celebrated exclamation on his death-bed does not, however, specially recognize this—“Dilexi justitiam et odivi iniquitatem, propterea morior in exilio.”
[559] Gregor. VII. Regist. Lib. I. Epist. 30; Lib. III. Epist. 3.
[560] According to Conrad of Ursperg (Chron. ann. 1080) among the reasons adduced for the deposition of Gregory the synod of Brixen, was “Qui inter concordes seminavit discordiam, inter pacificos lites, inter fratres scandala, _inter conjuges divortia_, et quicquid quiete inter pie viventes stare videbatur, concussit”—in which the words italicized may possibly allude to the separation of the married clergy. Conrad, however, was a compiler of the thirteenth century, and his statements are not to be received without caution. If this motive had its weight with the prelates of the synod, they did not care to publish it to the world, for there is no allusion to it in the letter of renunciation addressed by them to Gregory (Goldast. Const. Imp. I. 238)—forming a striking contrast to the proceedings of the synod of Pavia in 1076, already alluded to.
[561] Wibert Antipap. Epist. VI.
Bishop Benzo, the most bitter of imperialists, did not desire to be confounded with the Nicolitan heretics—
“Omnis enim caste vivens templum Dei dicitur; Si quis tantum sacramentum violare nititur, Unus de porcorum grege protinus efficitur. Facti cœlibes ardentem fugiamus Sodomam: Hierosolymam petamus, Christianis commodam.”
Comment. de Reb. Hen. IV. Lib. V. c. 6.
[562] Honorius III. in Vit. Gregor. VII. No. 15.
[563] Bernald. Constant. ad Herman. Contract. Append. ann. 1085.
[564] Henricus multitudinem sequens, accessit eis qui sacerdotum conjugium sublatum volebant. Quare resistentes ei opinioni condemnati sunt.—H. Mutii German. Chron. Lib. XV.
I do not remember to have met with any contemporary authority for this assertion, nor is there any provision of this nature in the decrees of the Diet as given by Goldastus (I. 245); but the chroniclers of the period were generally papalists, and would be apt to omit recording anything which they would deem so creditable to their adversaries. Yet that the imperialists were no longer held responsible for clerical irregularities is evident from a letter written in 1090 by Stephen, the papalist Bishop of Halberstadt, to Waltram of Magdeburg, who was a follower of Henry. In all his violent invectives against the imperialists, and in his long catalogue of their sins, he makes no allusion to priestly incontinence, showing that they must have disavowed these irregularities so formally as to leave no ground for imputations of complicity (Dodechini Append. ad Mar. Scot. ann. 1090).
[565] Bernald. Constant. ann. 1091.
[566] Bernald. Constant. ann. 1089.
[567] A monkish chronicler professes to record of his own knowledge Guiberto’s death-bed remorse for the schism which he had been instrumental in causing. “Malens, ut ab ore ipsius didicimus, apostolici nomen nunquam suscepisse.”—Chron. Reg. S. Pantaleon. ann. 1100.
[568] Udalr. Babenb. Cod. Lib. II. c. 173.
[569] Eos qui in subdiaconatu uxoribus vacare voluerint, ab omni sacro ordine removemus, officio atque beneficio ecclesiæ carere decernimus. Quod si ab episcopo commoniti non se correxerint, principibus licentiam indulgemus ut eorum feminas mancipent servituti. Si vero episcopi consenserint eorum pravitatibus, ipsi officii interdictione mulctentur.—Synod. Melfit. ann. 1089, can. 12.
The second canon of the same council—“Sacrorum canonum instituta renovantes, præcipimus ut a tempore subdiaconatus nulli liceat carnale commercium exercere. Quod si deprehensus fuerit, ordinis sui periculum sustinebit”—shows how much more venial was the offence of promiscuous licentiousness than the heresy of marriage.
[570] Urbani II. Epist. 24.
[571] Gratian. Dist. XXVII. c. 8.
[572] Decret. Comit. Constant. c. 2 (Goldast. I. 246).
[573] Et quia hospes est, plus ecclesiæ prodest: non eum parentela exhauriet, non _liberorum cura_ aggravabit, non cognatorum turba despoliet—Cosmæ Pragens. Chron. Lib. III. ann. 1098.—It should, however, be borne in mind that Bohemia had been Christianized in 871 by Cyrillus and Methodius, missionaries from Constantinople, and the national Slavonic worship, founded on the Greek faith, after many struggles, was not abolished until 1094 (see Krasinski’s Reformation in Poland, London, 1838, I. 13). The attachment of the race to their ancestral rites explains the proneness of the Bohemians and Poles to fall away into heresy.
[574] Höfler, Concilia Pragensia p. xiii. (Prag, 1862.)
[575] Annalista Saxo, ann. 1105.
[576] Nycholaitarum quoque fornicaria commixtio ibidem est ab omnibus abdicata.—Chron. Reg. S. Pantaleon. ann. 1105. Cf. Annal. Saxo, ann. 1105.
[577] Compare Bernaldi Constant. de Reordinatione vitanda etc.
[578] Quod cum dolore dicimus, vix pauci sacerdotes aut clerici Catholici in tanta terrarum latitudine reperiantur.—Annal. Saxo, ann. 1106.
[579] Concil. Trecens. ann. 1107 c. 2 (Pertz, Legum T. II. P. ii. p. 181).
[580] Cosmæ Pragensis Chron. Lib. III. ann. 1118, 1123.
Rerum cunctarum comes indimota mearum Bis Februi quinis obiit Boseteha kalendis.
[581] Ibid. Lib. III. ann. 1125 (Mencken. Script. Rer. German. III. 1799).
[582] Dubravii Hist. Bohem. Lib. XIV. (Ed. 1687, pp. 380-1.)
[583] Statuitur et hoc semper memorabile, secundum decreta canonum, presbyteros parochianos castos et sine uxoribus esse debere: uxorati vero presbyteri missam a nemine audiendam esse.—Annal. Bosoviens. ann. 1131.
Statuitur quoque ab omnibus, secundum decreta canonum, illud antiquum, quod semper erit innovandum, presbyteros castos et sine uxoribus esse, missam autem uxorati presbyteri neminem audire debere.—Chron. Sanpetrin. Erfurt. ann. 1131.
Statuitur etiam hoc semper memorabile, per decreta canonum presbyteros parrochianos castos et sine uxoribus esse debere, uxorati vero presbyteri missam a nemine audiendam esse.—Chron. Pegaviens. Continuat. ann. 1131.
[584] Ruperti Tuitens. Comment. in Apocalyps. Lib. II. cap. ii.
[585] Hist. Monast. S. Laurent. Leodiens. Lib. V. c. 39 (Martene Ampliss. Collect. IV. 1005).
[586] Henrici Salisburg. Archidiac. de Calam. Eccles. Salisburg. cap. ix.
[587] “Deinde dum nimio zelo rectitudinis de incontinentia clericorum multa sæve disponeret, sine condimento discrecionis, magnam sibi comparavit invidiam, et quam nec dici fas est, acquisivit infamiam.”—He went to Italy, seeking aid from Honorius II., but was captured by Conrad the Swabian, the rival of the Emperor Lothair, and died of affliction in his prison at Parma, October 1st, 1130. (Gest. Trevirorum Continuat. c. 27, 28.)
[588] Anon. Zwetlensis Hist. Roman. Pontif. No. CLXI. (Pez, T. I. P. iii. p. 385.)
[589] Concil. Ratisbonens. sæc. XIII. c. v. (Printed by Schneller, Straubing, 1785.)
[590] Presbyteris autem qui prima et legitima duxere conjugia, indulgentia ad tempus datur, propter vinculum pacis et unitatem Spiritus Sancti, quousque nobis in hoc Domini Apostolici paternitas consilietur.—Synod. Zabolcs ann. 1092 c. 3, or Decret. St. Ladisl. Lib. I. c. 3. (Batthyani, I. 434-5.)
[591] Synod. Zabolcs c. 1, 2.—Any prelate assenting to such illicit unions, and not insisting on immediate separation, was punishable to a reasonable extent (Ibid. c. 4).
[592] Synod. Strigonens. II. (Batthyani, II. 121-8). Peterffy’s emendation of “voluerint” for “noluerint,” in the clause respecting _digami_, can hardly be questioned.
[593] Decret. Coloman. cap. 41, 42, Comp. cap. 27 and 37.
[594] Synod. Vencellina, circa 1109.
[595] Batthyani, I. 431.
[596] Epist. Urbani apud Batthyani, II. 274.
[597] Synod. Dalmatiæ ann. 1199 (Batthyani, II. 289-90).
[598] Concil. Vienn. ann. 1267 (Batthyani, II. 415-17).
[599] Complures ea tempestate sacerdotes uxoribus velut jure legitimo utebantur.—Dlugosz, ad ann. 1197 (apud Krasinski, I. 52).
[600] Staravolsc. Concil. Epit. ap. Harduin. T. VI. P. II. p. 1937.
[601] Innocent. PP. III. Regest. Lib. IX. Epist. 235.
[602] Concil. Vratislaviens. ann. 1279, c. iii. (Hartzheim III. 808).
[603] Saxo. Grammat. Hist. Dan. Lib. XV. (Ed. 1576, p. 327).
[604] Innocent. PP. III. Regest. VI. 198.
[605] Innocent. III. Regest. XVI. 118.
[606] Prima intentio et cura Cardinalis Sabinensis in hoc concilio erat revocare Suecos et Gothos a schismate Græcorum, in quo presbyteri et sacerdotes, ductis publicis uxoribus consensisse videbantur.—Harduin. VII. 423.
[607] Jaffé, Regesta, p. 515-6.—Paschal. II. Epist. 497.
[608] Concil. Bremens. ann. 1266 (Hartzheim IV. 580).
[609] Emonis Chron. ann. 1219.
[610] “Eodem tempore defunctus est præfatus decanus (Herbrandus) possessor ecclesiæ in Husquert, tertius heres illius nominis, relicto parvulo ejusdem nominis.” (Emonis Chron. ann. 1231.)—and Emo alludes to him as “honesto viro Herbrando.”
“Obiit Geyco decanus in Firmetium vir per omnia sæcularibus artibus idoneus, et bene religiosus et obsequiosus. Successit ei Sicco, quartus a proavo Sigrepo.”—Ibid. ann. 1233.
[611] Menconis Chron. Werens. ann. 1271.
[612] Concil. Tolosan. ann. 1056 can. vii.
[613] Concil. Turon. ann. 1060 c. 6.
[614] Ceterum, quod excommunicavit diaconum suum propter ductam uxorem, contra canones fecisse videtur mihi, nisi forte cogente pertinacia ipsius.—Epist. Berengar. Turon. (Martene Thesaur. I. 195-6). It must be borne in mind that the persecution of Berenger arose solely from his theological subtleties, and that objections to celibacy formed no portion of his errors.
[615] Art de Vérifier les Dates, s. v.
[616] Concil. Pictaviens. ann. 1078 can. 9.
[617] Concil. Rotomag. ann. 1072 can. 16 “de clericis uxoratis.”
[618] Orderic. Vital. P. II. Lib. iv. c. 2.
[619] Concil. Juliobonens. ann. 1080 can. 3, 5 (Orderic. Vital. P. II. Lib. V. c. 6.—Harduin. Concil. T. VI. P. I. p. 1599).—Propter eorum feminas nulla pecuniæ emendatio exigatur.
[620] Pauli Carnot. Vet. Agano. Lib. VIII. c. 11.
[621] Gregor. VII. Regist. Lib. IX. Epist. 5.
[622] Gaufridi Grossi Vit. Bernardi Tironens. c. 6 §§ 51-54.
[623] Gregor. VII. Epist. Extrav. 29.—Epist. in Martene Thesaur. III. 871-6.
[624] Roujoux, Hist, de Bretagne, II. 98-99. The independence affected by the Breton church is well shown in a singularly impertinent letter addressed to Leo IX. by the clergy of Nantes, refusing to receive a bishop appointed by him, after the degradation for simony of Prodicus by the council of Rheims in 1050 (Martene Thesaur. I. 172-3).
[625] Martene Thesaur. III. 882.—Haddan and Stubbs II. 96.
[626] Gregor. VII. Regist. Lib. IV. Epistt. 10, 11.
[627] Ebrardi Chron. Watinens. cap. 22-3. Ebrard was a contemporary, a disciple of Otfrid, and therefore his statement of the motives of the persecution is entitled to credence.
[628] “Addens malos sacerdotes sacerdotes non esse, acsi peccator homo non esset homo.” From the tenor of Robert’s defence it is evident that it was the children of the clerks whom he disinherited. The documents are in Warnkönig, Hist. de Flandre, I. 330-3 (Bruxelles, 1835).
[629] Urbani PP. II. Epist. 70.
[630] Lambert. Atrebat. Epist. 60.
[631] Lambert. Atrebat. Epist. 84—Paschalis PP. II. Epist. 134.—Lambert. Epist. apud Baluz. et Mansi II. 150.
[632] Paschalis PP. II. Epist. 415.
[633] Guibert. Noviogent. de Vita Sua Lib. I. cap. vii.
[634] Concil. Claromont. can. 9, 10, 25.
In Lent of the following year (1096) Urban caused these canons to be received by a provincial council held under his auspices at Tours.—Bernald. Constant. ann. 1096.
[635] Ivon. Carnot. Epist. 218.
[636] Ivon. Decret. P. VI. c. 50 sqq.—Panorm. Lib. III. c. 84 sqq.
[637] Ivon. Epist. 200.
[638] Quod ultra modum laxaveris frena pudicitiæ, in tantum ut post acceptum archidiaconatum, accubante lateribus tuis plebe muliercularum, multam genueris plebem puerorum et puellarum.—Ibid. Epist. 277.
[639] Est etiam eis publica et inexpugnabilis cum mulieribus familiaritas, quibus illæ, promissis et præmissis obligatæ munusculis, dies iniquitatis et noctes infamiæ vindicare comprobantur.—Hildebert. Cenoman. Epist. 38 (Lib. II. Epist. 25).
[640] Hist. Episc. Verdunens. (D’Achery Spicileg. II. 254).
[641] Audivi turpissimam famam de monasterio Sanctæ Faræ, quod jam non locus sanctimonialium sed mulierum dæmonialium prostibulum dicendum est, corpora sua ad turpes usus omni generi hominum prostituentium.—Ivon. Epist. 70.
[642] Martene Thesaur. T. V. p. 1142-3.—Honorii PP. II. Epist. 91.—Guill. Nangis ann. 1123, 1124.
[643] P. Abælardi Sermo XXIX.
[644] Bull. Pontif. No. XXIII. ap. Hahnii Collect. Monument. Vet. I. 147. As to the reformation of the nuns of Laon, see Guill. de Nangis ann. 1128.
[645] Roberti de Monte Chron. ann. 1143.
[646] Nonne qui nocentes deberemus absolvere, eis malo exemplo nocemus? Nonne qui deberemus pollutos lavare, vitiorum nostrorum contagione alios polluimus?—— Sed nos, hodie indigni sacerdotes quid dicemus qui cæteris hominibus non majores sed deteriores sumus? Qui cum in conspectu hominum gradu sacerdotalis ordinis celsiores cæteris videamur, tamen cæteris inferiores vita moribusque jacemus? Radulph. Ardent. T. II. P. ii. Homil. 25.—See also Homil. 21.
[647] Nihil enim est quo magis lædatur Ecclesia quam quod laicos videt esse meliores clericis.—Pet. Cant. Verb. Abbreviat. cap. lvii.
[648] Hoc totum factum est rogatu Germani presbyteri, filiorumque ejus, qui post inde noster effectus est monachus.—Chron. Besuens. Chart. de tenement. German. presbyt.
[649] Innocent. PP. III. Regest. v. 67.
[650] Petri Venerab. de Mirac. Lib. I. c. 25.—Chron. Episc. Mindens. c. 26.
[651] S. Bernardi Vitæ Primæ Lib. VII. cap. xxi.
[652] Concil. Remens. ann. 1119 can. 4, 5.—“Nullus episcopus, nullus presbyter, nullus omnino de clero ecclesiasticas dignitates vel beneficia cuilibet, quasi hereditario jure, derelinquat.” Calixtus had already caused this provision to be adopted by the council of Toulouse, held in the previous June (Concil. Tolosan. ann. 1119 can. 8).
[653] Cujas quotes these verses as still current in his day, and attributes to the efforts of Calixtus the suppression of sacerdotal marriage in France. (Giannone, Apologia, c. xiv.)
[654] Orderic. Vital. P. III. Lib. xii. c. 13.
[655] Arnulf. Lexoviens. de Schismate cap. I. II. (D’Achery I. 153).
[656] Vit. S. Bertrandi Convenar. No. 13, 14 (Martene Ampliss. Collect. VI. 1028).
[657] Ut clerici ejusdem ecclesiæ sicut usque modo vixerunt permaneant; hoc tamen præcipimus ut presbyteri, diaconi, subdiaconi nullatenus deinceps uxores concubinas habeant; cæteri vero cujuscumque ordinis clerici propter fornicationem, licentiam habeant ducendi uxores.—Du Cange, s. v. _Concubina_.
[658] Epist. Alex. PP. III. in Martene Ampliss. Collect. II. 794.
[659] Concil. Paris, ann. 1212 can. xvi., xviii. (Ibid. VII. 99).
[660] Gregor. VII. Regist. Lib. IX. Epist. 5.
[661] Roger of Hoveden. ann. 1070.—Baron. Annal. ann. 1070 No. 26.
[662] Lanfranci Epist. XXI.
[663] Alexand. II. Epist. 83.
[664] Wilkins Concil. Mag. Britan. I. 363.
[665] Camden’s Britannia, Tit. Shroppshire.
[666] Decretumque est ut nullus canonicus uxorem habeat. Sacerdotes vero in castellis vel in vicis habitantes, habentes uxores non cogantur ut dimittant; non habentes interdicantur ut habeant; et deinceps caventur episcopi ut sacerdotes vel diaconos non præsumant ordinare, nisi prius profiteantur ut uxores non habeant.—Wilkins I. 367.
Polydor Virgil describes a council of London held by Lanfranc in 1078, in which—“Ante omnia mores sacerdotum parum puri quamproxime potuit, ad priscorum patrum regulam revocati sunt, estque illis in posterum tempus recte vivendi modus præscriptus” (Angl. Hist. Lib. IX.); but he has evidently mixed together the proceedings of various synods.
[667] Henric. Huntingdon. Lib. VII.—Matt. Paris ann. 1102.—Henry of Huntingdon, though an archdeacon, was himself the son of a priest, and therefore was not disposed to regard with complacency the stigma attached to his birth by the new order of things.
[668] Concil. Londin. ann. 1102.—Wilkins. I. 382 (Eadmer. Hist. Novor. Lib. III. ann. 1102).
[669] Anselmi Lib. III. Epist. 62.
[670] D’Achery Spicileg. III. 434.
[671] Paschalis PP. II. Epist. lxxiv.—Anselmi Lib. IV. Epist. 41.
[672] Simeon Dunelmens. _ap._ Pagi IV. 348.
[673] See the confirmation of excommunication in which St. Anselm exhaled his fiery indignation at those who continued with “bestiali insania” to defy the authorities of the church. (Anselmi Lib. III. Epist. 112.)
Anselm was not entirely without assistance in his efforts. One of his monks, Reginald, of the great monastery of Canterbury, wrote a fearfully diffuse paraphrase, in Leonine verse, of the life of St. Malchus. It was an evil-minded generation, indeed, that could resist such a denunciation of marriage as that pronounced by the saint—
Plenum sorde thorum subeam plenumque dolorum? Plenus, ait, tenebris thalamus sordet muliebris. Displicet amplexus, horror mihi copula, sexus. Conjugium vile, vilescit sponsa, cubile. Nolo thorum talem, desidero spiritualem.
(Croke’s Rhyming Latin Verse, p. 67.)
[674] Eadmer. Hist. Novor. Lib. IV.—Anselmi Lib. III. Epist. 109.
[675] Wilkins, I. 378-80.—Paschalis II. Epist. 221.
[676] D’Achery Spicileg. III. 448.
[677] Eadmeri Hist. Novor. Lib. IV.
[678] Eadmeri Hist. Novor. Lib. IV.
[679] Eadmeri Hist. Novor. Lib. IV.
[680] Messenii Chron. Episcoporum per Sueciam etc. p. 76 (Stockholmiæ, 1611).
[681] Concil. Londiniens. ann. 1126 c. 13 (Wilkins, I. 408).
[682] Henric. Huntingd. Lib. VII.—Matt. Paris ann. 1125.—Baronius (ann. 1125, No. 12) endeavors to disprove the story, but is only able to offer general negative allegations, of but little weight when opposed to the testimony of a contemporary like Henry of Huntingdon, who speaks of it as a matter of public notoriety, which covered the cardinal with disgrace and drove him from England.
Such conduct was a favorite theme of objurgation with the ascetics of the twelfth and thirteenth centuries—
Certe tu qui missam dicis Post amplexum meretricis, Potaberis ab inimicis Liquore sulphuris et picis.
(Du Méril, Poésies Latines, p. 133.)
So also, among the poems which pass under the name of Golias Episcopus is one of fierce invective directed against the priests, in which this is one of the principal accusations—
O sacerdos, hæc responde, Qui frequenter et jocunde Cum uxore dormis, unde Mane surgens, missam dicis, Corpus Christi benedicis, Post amplexus meretricis Minus quam tu peccatricis.
* * * * *
Plenus sorde, plenus mendis, Ad autorem manus tendis, Quem contempnis, quem offendis, Meretrici dum ascendis.
* * * * *
Quali corde, quali ore Corpus Christi, cum cruore, Tractas, surgens de fœtore, Dignus plagis et tortore.
Mapes’s Poems (Camd. Soc. Ed. pp. 49-50).
[683] Concil. Westmonast. ann. 1127 c. 5, 6, 7 (Wilkins, I. 410).
[684] Henric. Huntingd. Lib. VII.—Anglo Saxon Chron. ann. 1129.—Matt. Paris ann. 1129.
[685] Concil. Westmonast. ann. 1138 c. 8 (Wilkins, I. 415).
[686] Rymer, Fœdera Tom. I. ann. 1144.—Post. Concil. Lateran, P. XIX. passim.—Lib. I. Tit. 17 Extra.
[687] Orderic Vital. P. III. Lib. xiii. c. 20.
[688] Fluit semine et hinnit in feminas, adeo impudens ut libidinem, nisi quam publicaverit, voluptuosam esse non reputet.... Fornicationis abusum comparat necessitati. Proletarius est adeo quod paucis annis ei soboles tanta succrevit ut patriarcharum seriem antecedat.—Joann. Saresberiens. Epist. 310. Well might Alexander, in ordering his ejection, say “ipsum invenerint tot excessibus et criminibus publicis irretitum, quod per eorum nobis litteras recitata auribus nostris nimium præstiterunt tædium et dolorem.”—Elmham Hist. Monast. August, p. 413.
[689]
Crescit malorum cumulus, Est sacerdos ut populus, Currunt ad illicitum, Uterque juxta libitum Audax et imperterritus.
(Wright, Polit. Songs of England, p. 9.) And another indignant churchman exclaims:—
Qui sunt qui ecclesias vendunt et mercantur? Qui sunt fornicarii? Qui sunt qui mœchantur? Qui naturam transvolant et abominantur? Qui? clerici; a nobis non longe extra petantur.
Mapes’s Poems, pp. 156-7.
[690] A woman applied to Bishop Hugh for advice “super impotentia mariti, quia debitum ei reddere non poterat,” when the prelate gravely replied, “Faciamus ergo si vis eum sacerdotem, et statim illo in opere, reddita sibi facultate, proculdubio potens efficietur.”—Girald. Cambrens. Gemm. Eccles. Dist. II. c. xviii.
[691] Benedicti Abbatis Gesta Regis Henr. II. T. I. pp. 135-6; T. II. p. xxx. (M. R. Series.)
[692] Chron. Monast. de Bello, London, 1846, pp. 142-3.
[693] Haddan & Stubbs’s Councils of Great Britain I. 423-4.
[694] Matt. Paris ann. 1208.
Perhaps it is to John’s experience in this matter that may be attributed the fact that when, in 1214, he entered into a league with his knight-errant nephew, the Emperor Otho IV., against Philip Augustus, they also declared war against Innocent III., and proposed to carry out a gigantic scheme of spoliation by enriching, from ecclesiastical property, all who might rally to their standard. They proclaimed their intention of humbling the church, reducing the numbers of the clergy, stripping those who were left of all their temporalities, and leaving them only moderate stipends. Both John and Otho had been under excommunication, and could speak feelingly of the overweening power and abuses of the church, whose members they characterize as “genus hoc pigrum et fruges consumere natum, quod otia ducit, quodque sub tecto marcet et umbra, qui frustra vivunt, quorum omnis labor in hoc est, ut Baccho Venerique vacent, quibus crapula obesis poris colla inflat, ventresque abdomine onerat.” (Lünig. Cod. Diplom. Italiæ I. 34). A few weeks later the Bridge of Bouvines put a sudden end to this prosperous plan of reformation.
[695] Du Méril, Poésies Pop. Latines, p. 179.
[696] Mapes’s Poems, p. 10.
[697] Du Méril, op. cit. p. 171.
[698] Filius autem, more sacerdotum parochialium Angliæ fere cunctorum, damnabili quidem et detestabili, publicam secum habebat comitem individuam, et in foco focariam et in cubiculo concubinam.—Girald. Cambrens. Specul. Eccles. Dist. iii. c. 8. (Girald. Opp. III. 129.) However Giraldus and the severer churchmen might stigmatize these companions as concubines, they were evidently united in the bonds of matrimony. He says himself, respecting Wales, “Nosse te novi ... canonicos Menevenses fere cunctos, maxime vero Walensicos, publicos fornicarios et concubinarios esse, sub alis ecclesiæ cathedralis et tanquam in ipso ejusdem gremio focarias suas cum obstetricibus et nutricibus atque cunabulis in laribus et penetralibus exhibentes.... Adeo quidem ut sicut patres eorum ipsos ibi genuerunt et promoverunt, sic et ipsi more consimili prolem ibidem suscitant, tam in vitiis sibi quam beneficiis succedaneam. Filiis namque suis statim cum adulti fuerint et plene pubertatis annos excesserint, concanonicorum suorum filias, ut sic firmiori fœdere sanguinis scilicet et affinitatis jure jungantur, _quasi maritali copula dari procurant_. Postmodum autem ... canonicas suas filiis suis conferri per cessionem non inefficaciter elaborant.” (De Jure et Statu Menev. Eccles. Dist. i.) That this condition of affairs was not confined to the canons of cathedral churches is evident from his general remarks in the Gemm. Eccles. Dist. II. cap. xxiii.
His treatise De Statu Menevens. Eccles. was written after 1215, and therefore subsequent to the death of Innocent III.
[699] Innocent. PP. III. Regest. V. 66; VIII. 147.
[700] De presbytero et logico. Mapes’s Poems, p. 256.
[701] Hali Meidenhad, p. 7. (Early English Text Society, 1866.)
[702] Innocent. PP. III. Regest. VI. 103.
[703] Mapes’s Poems, pp. 171-2. This well-known poem has been attributed to the Venerable Hildebert, Bishop of Le Mans, as written on the occasion of the reformation of the French clergy by Calixtus II. (Croke, Rhyming Latin Verse, p. 85), but the character of that reverend prelate forbids such an assumption, even if the allusion to Innocent did not assign to it a later period.
[704] Concil. Eboracens. ann. 1195 c. 17.—Concil. Londiniens. ann. 1200 c. 10.—Concil. Dunelmens. ann. 1220.—Concil. Oxoniens. ann. 1222 c. 28.—Constit. Archiep. Cantuar. ann. 1225 (Matt. Paris ann. 1225).—Constit. Episc. Lincoln. ann. 1230 (Wilkins, I. 627).—Constit. Provin. Cantuar. ann. 1236 c. 3, 4, 30.—Constit. Coventriens. ann. 1237 (Wilkins, I. 641), &c.
[705] Matt. Paris ann. 1237.
[706] Wilkins, I. 672-3.
[707] De Convocatione Sacerdotum (Mapes’s Poems, pp. 180-2).
[708] Mapes’s Poems, pp. 176-9.—All the poetasters of the period, however, were not enlisted on one side. There is extant an exhortation against marriage, addressed to the clergy, which consists of a violent invective against the sex, recapitulating the customary accusations against women with all the brutal coarseness of the age:—
Hæc est iniquitas omnis adulteræ Qui virum proprium vellet non vivere, Ut det adultero non cessat rapere— Desistat igitur clerus nunc nubere.
Du Méril, op. cit. p. 184.
The “Confessio Goliæ” feelingly bewails the difficulty of rendering obedience to the new regulations:—
Res est arduissima vincere naturam, In aspectu virginum mentem ferre puram; Juvenes non possumus legem sequi duram, Leviumque corporum non habere curam. Quis in igne positus igne non uratur? Quis in mundo demorans castus habeatur? Ubi Venus digito juvenes venatur Oculis illaqueat, facie prædatur?
Mapes’s Poems, p. 72.
[709] Matt. Paris ann. 1250.
This Boniface was brother of the Duke of Savoy, and was one of the Italian prelates whose intrusion into the choice places of the Anglican church was a source of intense irritation. The career of another brother, Philip, is an instructive illustration of the ecclesiastical manners of the age. He was in deacon’s orders, and yet, as a leader of condottieri, he was a strenuous supporter of Innocent IV. in his quarrel with Frederic II. He was created Archbishop of Lyons, Bishop of Valence, Provost of Bruges, and Dean of Vienne, and, after enjoying these miscellaneous dignities for some twenty years, when at length Clement IV. insisted on his ordination and consecration, he threw off his episcopal robe, married first the heiress of Franche-Comté and then a niece of Innocent IV.—dying at last as Duke of Savoy (Milman, Latin Christ. IV. 326).
The indignation felt at the standing grievance of foreign prelates is quaintly expressed a century later by Langlande—
And a peril to the pope And prelates that he maketh, That bere bisshopes names Of Bethleem and Babiloigne, That huppe aboute in Engelond To halwe mennes auteres, And crepe amonges curatours, And confessen ageyn the lawe.
Piers Ploughman, Wright’s Edition, l. 10695-702.
[710] Nullusque eorum uxorem ducat: et si antequam sacros ordines suscepit uxorem duxerit, seu postea, si beneficium habeat, ipso privetur, et ab exsecutione sui officii suspendatur, nisi in casu a jure concesso.—Constit. Walteri Episc. Dunelmens. (Wilkins, I. 705).
[711] Sir, il ne doit mie joyer du benefit de celle priviledge, car il ad forfait per vice de Bigamy; comme celui qui ad espousé vefve ou plusors femmes.—Myrror of Justice, cap. III. sect. v.
[712] Concil. Londiniens. ann. 1268 c. 8 (Wilkins, II. 5).
[713] Convocat. Cantuar. ann. 1399 c. 13 (Wilkins, III. 240).
[714] The canon law maintained the extraordinary doctrine that the confession of the guilty woman could not be received as evidence against her accomplice, though it was good as against herself. “Unde nec sacerdotes accusare nec in eos testificari valent.... Quia ergo ista de se confitetur, super alienum crimen ei credi non oportet; sed contra eam sua confessio interpretanda est” (Gratian. P. II. c. xv. q. 3). It would be hard to imagine a rule of practice better fitted to repress investigation and to shield offenders.
[715] Wilkins, II. 40.
[716] Ad domos religiosarum veniens, fecit exprimi mammillas earundem, ut sic physice si esset inter eas corruptela, experiretur—Matt. Paris ann. 1251.
[717] Adæ de Marisco Epist. passim (Monumenta Franciscana). How little the character of the clergy had improved under the ceaseless efforts of the preceding half century may be guessed from Adam’s description of his contemporary brethren—“Nihil aliud pervicacissima caninæ voracitatis impudentia consectantur, quam caducam fastuum arrogantiam, quam mobilem quæstuum affluentiam, quam sordidam luxuum petulentiam, auctoritatem summæ salvationis in perditionis æternæ crudelitatem depravantes; cernimus usquequaquam quasi solutum Satanam effrænata tyrannide beatam hæreditatem benedicti Dei immanissime depopulari.”—Ibid. Epist. CCXLVII. P. i. c. 18.
[718]
And thise ersedeknes that ben set to visite holi churche, Everich fondeth hu he may shrewedelichest worche; He wole take mede of that on and that other, And late the parsoun have a wyf and the prest another, At wille: Coveytise shal stoppen here mouth, and maken hem al stille.
Wright, Political Songs of England, p. 326.
So Robert Langlande states
“In the consistorie bifore the commissarie He cometh noght but ofte; For hir lawe dureth over longe, But if thei lacchen silver, And matrimoyne for moneie Maken and unmaken.”
Vision of Piers Ploughman, v. 10102-7 (Wright’s Edition).
[719] 1 Henry VII. cap. 4.
[720] Gwentian Code, Book II. chap. xxx. “Because he was begotten contrary to decree.”—Dimetian Code, Book II. chap. viii. § 27 (Aneurin Owen’s Ancient Laws and Institutes of Wales, Vol. I. pp. 761, 445). Of the latter of these codes, the recension which has reached us contains alterations made by Rys son of Grufudd, showing it to be posterior at least to the year 1180.
[721] Anomalous Laws, Book X. chap. vii. § 19 (Owen, Vol. II. p. 331).
[722] Ibid. chap. ix. (Vol. II. p. 347).
[723] Ibid. Book VIII. chap. xi. § 19 (Vol. II. p. 205).
[724] Ibid. Book XI. chap. iii. § 15 (Vol. II. p. 409).
[725] Senchus Mor. Introduction. pp. 57-9. (Edited by Hancock, Dublin, 1865.)
[726] Lanfranci Epistt. 37, 38.—Bernardi Vit. S. Malachiæ cap. iii. viii.—The rudeness of the age may be measured by the fact that when Malachi determined to adorn the venerable monastery of Benchor with an oratory of stone such as he had seen abroad, the mere laying of the foundations aroused the wonderment of the people, to whom buildings of that kind were unknown—“quod in terra illa necdum ejusmodi ædificia invenirentur”—and his enemies took advantage of the feeling to interfere with the work on the ground that such an enterprise was unheard of, and that so stupendous an undertaking could never be accomplished. This piece of presumption was promptly rebuked by the death of the ringleader, and by the finding in the excavations of a treasure which enabled St. Malachi to execute his plans (Vit. S. Malach. c. xxviii.). St. Bernard, who derived his impressions from Malachi and his companions, thus describes the Irish of Connaught, “sic protervos ad mores, sic ferales ad ritus, sic ad fidem impios, ad leges barbaros, cervicosos ad disciplinam, spurcos ad vitam. Christiani nomine, re pagani. Non decimas, non primitias dare, non legitima inire conjugia, non facere confessiones; pœnitentias nec qui peteret, nec qui daret penitus invenire. Ministri altaris pauci admodum erant.”—Ibid. cap. viii.
[727] Ibid. c. x. xi. xii. xiii.
[728] Ibid. c. x.
[729] Ibid. c. xv.
[730] Ibid. c. xviii.—Fiunt de medio barbaricæ leges, Romanæ introducuntur.—Ibid. c. viii.
[731] Ibid. c. xvi.—Illæ gentes quæ a diebus antiquis monachi quidem nomen audierunt, monachum non viderunt.
[732] In the hymn in which St. Bernard celebrated the virtues of his friend he compares him to the Apostles—
Sobrius victus, castitas perennis, Fides, doctrina, animarum lucra, Meritis parem cœtui permiscet Apostolorum.
[733] Sermo Giraldi in Concil. Dublinens. (De Rebus a se Gestis Lib. II. c. 14).
In the “Topographia Hibernica,” Dist. III. cap. 27, Giraldus confirms his assertion as to the chastity and drunkenness of the Irish clergy, but admits that they observed the canonical fasts with praiseworthy strictness.
[734] Hist. Archiep. Bremens ann. 1179 (Lindenbrog. Script. Septent. p. 107).
It must be borne in mind, however, that in the Irish church bishops were almost as numerous as in the primitive church of Africa—“singulæ pene ecclesiæ singulos haberent episcopos.”—Bernard. Vit. S. Malachiæ cap. X.
[735] Cap. 13 Extra Lib. I. Tit. xvii.
[736] Benedicti Abbatis Gesta Henrici II. ann. 1171.
[737] Girald. Cambrens. op. cit. Lib. II. c. 13.
[738] Girald. Cambrens. loc. cit.
[739] Innocent PP. III. Regest. v. 158.
[740] Concil. Dublinens. ann. 1217 (Wilkins, I. 548).
[741] Quia putridum libidinosæ spurcitiæ contagium adeo apud clericos et presbyteros invaluit his diebus, quod nec auctoritas evangelica, nec canonica severitas illud hactenus extirpare potuit, quia in suæ perpetuæ damnationis periculum, et ordinis ecclesiasticæ ignominiam, populique perniciosum exemplum manifestum, adhuc suas publice detinent concubinas, etc.—Constit. Synod. Ossoriens. (Wilkins, II. 502).
[742] Bradshaw’s Enniskillen (London Athenæum, Sept. 7th, 1878, p. 305).
[743] Haddan and Stubbs, II. 175-80.
[744] Haddan and Stubbs, II, 216, 224-7, 235.—See also Cosmo Innes’ “Scotland in the Middle Ages,” pp. 107 sqq. We may assume that John of Crema or the pope must have conferred extraordinary powers on David before he could have the presumption to thus arbitrarily regulate and revolutionize the church. This, indeed, may readily be conceived as probable when we reflect how little authority Rome could have exercised over the Culdees, and how readily Scotland must have been subjected to the central power by placing her ecclesiastical establishment in the hands of the Sassenach monks.
Towards the end of the 12th century, Giraldus Cambrensis calls the Culdees of Bardsey in Wales, “Cœlibes vel Colidei” and characterizes them as “religiosissimi” (Itin. Cambr. II. 6—_ap._ Haddan and Stubbs, II. xxiii.).
[745] Gesta Henrici II. T. I. p. 282 (M. R. Series).
[746] Concil. Scotican. ann. 1225 c. 18, 62 (Wilkins, I. 610).
[747] Chron. Paslatens. ann. 1268 (Wilkins, II. 19).
[748] Hist. Compostellan. Lib. II. c. 1.
[749] Hist. Compostellan. Lib. I. c. 20.
[750] Didaci Decret. No. 15 (Hist. Compostellan. Lib. I. cap. 90).
[751] Synod. Helenens. ann. 1027 c. 3 (Aguirre, IV. 393).
[752] Hist, de España, Lib. IX. cap. xi.
[753] Concil. Compostellan. ann. 1056 can. 3. An allusion, however, to those who left the church and married being allowed to return on abandoning their wives, would seem to show that some supervision was exercised. The council of Coyanza, in 1050, had forbidden the residence of strange women, except mother, aunt, or step-mother, but says nothing as to marriage.—Con. Coyacens. ann. 1050 c. iii. (Aguirre IV. 405, 407).
[754] Concil. Gerundens. ann. 1068 can. 7, 8 (Labbei et Coleti T. XII.). The council of Toulouse, in 1056 (see ante, p. 255), which ordered the separation of priests from their wives, undertook to include Spain in its legislation, presumably meaning the eastern portion of the Peninsula which was subject to the Archbishops of Narbonne.
[755] Gregor. VII. Regist. Lib. IV. Epist. 28.
[756] Concil. Gerundens. ann. 1078 can. 1, 3, 4, 5 (Labbei et Coleti T. XII.).
[757] Mariana, loc. cit.
[758] Paschal. PP. II. Epist. 57.
[759] Hist. Compostellan. Lib. I. cap. 20, 58, 81; Lib. II. cap. 3; Lib. III. cap. 46.—Even the moderate reforms introduced met with violent opposition—“nobis omnibus, veluti bruta animalia, nulla adhuc jugali asperitate depressa, reluctantibus”—and only a portion seem to have submitted “quosdam sibi acquiescentes doctrina et operatione conspicuos divina clementia reddidit.”
[760] Didaci Decreta, No. 21 (Hist. Compostell. Lib. I. cap. 96).
[761] Ibid. Lib. I. cap. 100.—“Si qui ex eorum progenie clerici esse et sæculariter continere vellent.”
[762] Hist. Compostellan. Lib. II. cap. 87.
[763] The Spanish church was not alone in this looseness of discipline as regards canons. When Arthur of Britanny took up arms against his uncle King John, and advanced with an army to Tours at Easter, A. D. 1200, he there “more debito in ecclesia B. Martini in canonicum est receptus, et in stallum decani in vestibus chori, sicut canonicus installatus.”—Chron. Turonens. ann. 1200 (Martene Ampl. Collect. V. 1038).
[764] Hist. Compostell. Lib. III. cap. 11.
[765] Ibid. Lib. I. cap. 101 (Concil. Legionens. ann. 1114 can. 8).
[766] Concil. Palentin. ann. 1129 can. 5.—“Concubinæ clericorum manifestæ ejiciantur.”
[767] Hist. Compostellan. Lib. III. cap. 20.—“Pro modulo suæ possibilitatis.”
[768] Concil. Hispan. Sæc. XIII. (Martene Thesaur. IV. 167).
[769] “De los clérigos que casan á bendiciones habiendo órdenes sagradas, que pena deben haber ellos et aquellas con quien casan.—Casándose algunt clérigo que hobiese órden sagrada non debe fincar sin pena, ca débenle vedar de oficio, et tollerle el beneficio que hobiere de la eglesia por sentencia de descomulgamiento fasta que la dexe et faga penitencia de aquel yerro, etc.”—Siete Partidas, P. I. Tit. vi. l. 41.
[770] Concil. Valentin. ann. 1255 (Aguirre V. 197, 201).
[771] Constit. Synodal. Arnaldi de Peralta Episc. Valentin. (Aguirre V. 207-8).
[772] Synod. Gerund. ann. 1257 can. 4; ann. 1274 can. 25 (Martene Ampl. Coll. VIII. 1461, 1469).
[773] Concil. Penna-fidelens. ann. 1302 can. ii. (Aguirre V. 226).
[774] Concil. Vallis-oletan. ann. 1322 can. vi. vii. (Aguirre V. 243-5).
[775] Concil. Salmanticens. ann. 1335 can. iii. (Aguirre V. 266).
[776] Concil. Palentin. ann. 1388 can. ii. (Aguirre V. 298-99).
[777] Et utinam nunquam continentiam promisissent, maxime Hispani et regnicolæ, in quibus provinciis in pauco maiori numero sunt filii laicorum quam clericorum.... Sæpe cum parochianis mulieribus quas ad confessionem admittunt, scelestissime fornicantur.... De bonis ecclesiæ pascunt concubinam continue et filios, et de pecunia ecclesiae emunt eis possessiones.... Multi presbyteri et alii constituti in sacris, maxime in Hispania, in Asturia et Gallicia et alibi, et publice et aliquoties per publicum instrumentum promittunt et jurant quibusdam, maxime nobilibus mulieribus, numquam eas dimittere; et dant eis arras de bonis ecclesiæ et possessiones ecclesiæ, publice eas ducunt, cum consanguineis et amicis et solenni convivio, acsi essent uxores legitimæ.—Alv. Pelag. de Planctu Ecclesiæ Lib. II. Art. xxviii. (Ed. 1517 fol. 131-3).
This forms part of a list of fifty-four charges brought by Pelayo against the clergy of his time—“peccant in his communiter.” If the good bishop does not exaggerate, these ministers of Christ must have been a fearful curse to the communities over which they presided in the name of the Saviour.
[778] Concil. Dertusan. ann. 1429 can. ii. (Aguirre V. 335-6).
[779] Presbyteris, diaconibus, subdiaconibus et monachis concubinas habere, seu matrimonia contrahere, penitus interdicimus: contracta quoque matrimonia ab hujusmodi personis disjungi, et personas ad pœnitentiam redigi, juxta sacrorum canonum diffinitiones judicamus.—Concil. Lateran. I. c. 21.
[780] Thus Gregory the Great, in 602: “Si enim dicunt religionis causa conjugia debere dissolvi sciendum est quia etsi hoc lex humana concessit, divina lex tamen prohibuit.”—Gregor. I. Lib. XI. Epist. 45.
And St. Augustin: “Proinde qui dicunt talium nuptias non esse nuptias sed potius adulteria non mihi videntur satis acute ac diligenter considerare quid dicant ... et cum volunt eas separatas reddere continentiæ faciunt maritos earum adulteros veros etc.”—De Bono Viduit. c. 10.
[781] Decrevimus ut ii qui a subdiaconatu et supra uxores duxerint, aut concubinas habuerint, officio atque beneficio ecclesiastico careant.—Concil. Claromont. ann. 1130 can. 4. This is repeated verbatim in the council of Rheims in 1131, canon 4.
Concerning the latter a contemporary observes: “Placuit etiam domino apostolico et toti concilio, ne quis audiat missam presbyteri habentis concubinam vel uxorem. Assensu etiam omnium firmatum est ut clerici omnes a subdiacono et supra continentes sint, et qui non fuerint continentes, deponantur.”—Udalr. Babenb. Cod. Lib. II. c. 1.
[782] Ut autem lex continentiæ et Deo placens munditia in ecclesiasticis personis et sacris ordinibus dilatetur, statuimus quatenus episcopi, presbyteri, diaconi, subdiaconi, regulares canonici et monachi atque conversi professi, qui sanctum transgredientes propositum uxores sibi copulare praesumpserint, separentur. Hujusmodi namque copulationem, quam contra ecclesiasticam regulam constat esse contractam, matrimonium non esse censemus. Qui etiam ab invicem separati, pro tantis excessibus condignam pœnitentiam agant.—Concil. Lateran. II. ann. 1139 c. 7.
[783] Sed nimis abundans per universum orbem nequitia terrigenarum corda contra ecclesiastica scita obduravit.—Orderic. Vital. P. III. Lib. xiii. c. 20.
[784] Concil. Remens. ann. 1148 can. 3, 8. “Sanctorum patrum et prædecessoris nostri Papæ Innocentii vestigia inhærentes, statuimus quatenus episcopi, presbyteri, diaconi, etc.”
[785] Et ad hæc nihil ad præsens certius breviusque respondendum occurrit, nisi quod ita sancti antistites sapuerunt: rectene? ipsi viderint.—Lib. de Præcept. et Dispensat, cap. XVII.—Abelard contrasts the contradictory canons of the church in these matters in his _Sic et Non_ cap. CXXII. It was possibly among other motives the skilful unveiling of ecclesiastical inconsistencies in this curious work that led the authorities of the church to procure the compilation of Gratian’s “Decretum.”
[786] Bernardi Epist. LXXVI.
[787] Ejusd. de Considerat. Lib. III. cap. v.
[788] Si vero diaconus a ministerio cessare voluerit, et contracto matrimonio licite potest uti. Nam etsi in ordinatione sua castitatis votum obtulerit, tamen tanta est vis in sacramento conjugii, quod nec ex violatione voti potest dissolvi ipsum conjugium.—Comment. in Can. i. Dist. XXVII.
The introduction of the doctrine of Innocent and Eugenius into the church has given rise to some controversy. In the Encyclical of Aug. 22, 1851, and in the Syllabus of Dec. 1864, Pius IX. has condemned the error of attributing it to Boniface VIII. Some zealously orthodox writers have endeavored to prove that the church consistently maintained this doctrine from the beginning, but the contrary is admitted by the greater number of Catholic authorities. Cf. Zaccaria, Storia Polemica, p. 346-7 and Bernal Diaz, Practice Criminalis Canonica cap. 74.
[789] Gerhohi Tract. adv. Simoniac. c. 2.—About the year 1140, we find St. Bernard (Epist. 203) writing to the bishop and clergy of Trèves, urging them to labor for the reformation of a married subdeacon of their church, in terms which show that no severe application of the canons was to be expected.
[790] Gerhohi Exposit. in Psalm LXIV. cap. xlix.
[791] Gerhohi Exposit. in Psalm LXIV. c. xxxv. An allusion in this passage to Eugenius III. and the council of Rheims shows that it was written between 1148 and 1153. It seems that the nuns rebelled against the canon (Concil. Remens. ann. 1148 can. iv.) confining them to their convents under threat of deprivation of Christian sepulture.
[792] Ibid. cap. xlvi.
[793] Hugon. Rothomag. contra Hæret. Lib. III. cap. v.—Hugh gives us in a new form the old calculation as to the comparative merits of virginity, continence, and marriage—“Non centesimo honore cum virginibus gloriatur, non sexagesima continentiæ palma lætatur, sed tricesimo conjugii labore fatigatur.”
[794] Fortescue de Laud. Leg. Angl. cap. xxi.—Fortescue speaks of the case as having occurred within his own knowledge.
[795] Et constituit ut nullus in sacris ordinibus habeat uxorem vel concubinam.—Chron. S. Ægid. in Brunswig.
[796] Concil. Turon. ann. 1163 can. 4 (MS. St. Michael. ap. Harduin. Tom. VI. P. ii. p. 1600).
[797] Qui autem a subdiaconatu vel supra ad matrimonia convolaverint, mulieres etiam invitas et renitentes relinquant.—Concil. Abrincens. ann. 1172 c. 1. I give this on the authority of the Abate Zaccaria (Nuova Giustificazione del Celibato Sacro p. 120); there is no such canon among those attributed to the council by Hardouin (T. VI. P. II. p. 1634), and by Bessin (Concil. Rotomagensia, p. 86), whose accounts of the proceedings are extracted from Roger of Hoveden and tally with that given in the Gesta Henrici II. attributed to Benedict of Peterboro (I. 33. M. R. Series). As a number of canons proposed by the papal legates, Cardinals Theodwin and Albert, were rejected by the Norman bishops, it is possible that the local reports and those current at Rome may have differed.
[798] Post Concil. Lateran. P. XVIII. c. 12.
[799] Post Concil. Lateran. P. XVIII. e. 2, 6.
[800] Sane sacerdotes illi, qui nuptias contrahunt, quæ non nuptiæ sed contubernia sunt potius nuncupanda, post longam pœnitentiam et vitam laudabilem continentes, officio suo restitui poterunt, et ex indulgentia sui episcopi ejus exsecutionem habere.—Can. 4 Extra, Tit. iii. Lib. III.
[801] Post Concil. Lateran. P. XVIII. c. 4.
[802] Post Concil. Lateran. P. XVIII. c. 13.—In a decretal addressed to the Dean and Chapter of Lincoln, Alexander grants permission of marriage to a certain subdeacon, and forbids interference with such legitimate marriage, giving as a reason that the subdiaconate of the person referred to carried with it no preferment.—Ibid. c. 14.
[803] Post Concil. Lateran. P. VI. c. 9.
[804] Votum simplex impedit sponsalia de futuro, non autem dirimit matrimonium sequens; secus in voto solenni.—Can. 6 Extra Lib. IV. Tit. vi.
The practical rule deduced by a shrewd lawyer in the latter half of the thirteenth century from this varying legislation is, “Note deus relles; que simple vou et sollempnié lie maeme quant à Deu; et simple vou empêche à marier, mès il ne tost pas ce qui est fet; et note que vou, de la nature de soi, ne dépièce pas mariage, mès c’est de constitucion d’yglise”—(Livres de Jostice et de Piet, Liv. X. chap. vi. § 6). This is likewise the conclusion reached by Thomas Aquinas, Summ. Theol. Supp. Quæst. LIII. Art. i. ii.
[805] Alani ab Insulis Lib. Pœnitentialis.
[806] Post. Concil. Lateran. P. XIX. c. 1, 2, 3, 4, 5, 6, 7, 9, 10.—Can. 10, 11, 12, 14, Extra Lib. I. Tit. xvii.
[807] Can. 17, 18, Extra Lib. I. Tit. xvii.
[808] Quia de talibus absque difficultate curia Romana dispensat, quia et de subdiaconibus quibusdam audivimus a domino Papa dispensatum.—Girald. Cambrens. Gemm. Eccles. Dist. II. cap. v.
[809] Consuetudinem introductam quod filii eorum qui vestras ecclesias tenuerunt ... patribus ... consecuti, sub reprehensibili collusione volunt ipsas ecclesias jure successionis habere, etc.—Lucii. PP. III. Epist. 88.—Cf. Concil. Rotomag. ann. 1189 can. vi.
[810] Chartular. Eccles. Parisiens. No. XX. T. I. p. 35.
[811] D’Oudegherst, Annales de Flandre, chap. CIII.—Baluz. et Mansi T. I.—Miræi Diplom. Lib. I. c. 88.—Grandes Chroniques, T. IV. pp. 339-42.—Innocent. PP. III. Regest. Append. ad Lib. XIV.
[812] Innocent. PP. III. Regest. XI. 204.
[813] Innocent. PP. III. Regest. XII. 13.
[814] Girald. Cambrens. Gemm. Eccles. Dist. II. cap. vi.
The “Gemma” was the favorite work of its author, who relates with pride the approbation specially bestowed upon it by Innocent III.
[815] Yet so hopeless was this well-intentioned attempt, that Giraldus is willing to let off his recalcitrant clergy with the simple restriction demanded of the laity—abstinence for three days previous to partaking of the communion. “Qui igitur in immunditiæ veluti suo volutabro volvitur adhuc et versatur, hanc saltem altari sacro et sacrificiis reverentiam sacerdos exhibeat, ut vel tribus diebus et noctibus priusquam corpus Christi consecrare præsumat mundum ... vas custodiat.”—Ibid. cap. vi.
[816] Hoc autem magistrum Petrum Manducatorem in audientia totius scholæ suæ quæ tot et tantis viris literatissimis referta fuit dicentem audivi, quia nunquam hostis ille antiquus in aliquo articulo, adeo ecclesiam Dei circumvenit, sicut in voti illius emissione.—Ibid. cap. vi.
[817] Epist. Henr. Card. Albanens. (Ludewig, Rei. Msctor. II. 441).
[818] Baluz. et Mansi III. 380.
[819] De filiis quoque sacerdotum, diaconorum, rusticorum, statuimus, ne cingulum militare aliquatenus assumant; et qui jam assumpserunt, per judicem provincias a militia pellantur.—Feudor. Lib. V. Tit. x.—Conf. Conr. Urspergens. ann. 1187.
[820] Statut. Synod. Odon. Tullens. cap. vi. (Hartzheim III. 456).
[821] Can. 7 Extra Lib. V. Tit. xxxviii.
[822] Ne vero facilitas veniæ incentivum tribuat delinquendi: statuimus, ut qui deprehensi fuerint incontinentiæ vitio laborare, prout magis aut minus peccaverint, puniantur secundum canonicas sanctiones, quas efficacius et districtius præcipimus observari, ut quos divinus timor a malo non revocat, temporalis saltem pœna a peccato cohibeat.
Si quis igitur hac de causa suspensus, divina celebrare præsumpserit, non solum ecclesiasticis beneficiis spolietur, verum etiam pro hac duplici culpa, perpetuo deponatur.
Prælati vero qui tales præsumpserint in suis iniquitatibus sustinere, maxime obtentu pecuniæ vel alterius commodi temporalis, pari subjaceant ultioni.
Qui autem secundum regionis suæ morem non abdicarunt copulam conjugalem, si lapsi fuerint, gravius puniantur, cum legitimo matrimonio possint uti.—Concil. Lateranens. IV. can. 14.
Ad abolendam pessimam, quæ in plerisque inolevit ecclesiis, corruptelam, firmiter prohibemus, ne canonicorum filii, maxime spurii, canonici fiant in sæcularibus ecclesiis, in quibus instituti sunt patres etc.—Ibid. can. 31.
[823] See his instructions to his legates, cap. xi. (Martene Ampl. Collect. VII. 267-74).
[824] Concil. Melfitan. ann. 1284 c. iii. (Ibid. p. 284).
[825] Tolle de ecclesia honorabile connubium et torum immaculatum; nonne reples eam concubinariis, incestuosis, seminifluis, mollibus, masculorum concubitoribus et omni denique genere immundorum?—Bernardi Serm. lxvi. in Cantic. § 3.—This series is understood to have been written in 1135.
[826] Bernardi Serm. de Conversione cap. xx.
[827] Constit. Gallonis cap. (Harduin. I. T. VI. P. II. p. 1975).—Giraldus Cambrensis, a few years earlier, makes the same assertion (Gemma. Eccles. Dist. II. cap. xv.).
[828] Statut. Eccles. Trecorens. c. 32 (Martene Thesaur. IV. 1102). Cf. Synod. Andegavens. ann. 1312 cap. 1. (D’Achery I. 742).
[829] Statut. Eccles. Nemausens. Tit. VII. c. 5 (Martene Thesaur. IV. 1044).
[830] Innocent. PP. III. Regest. Lib. XV. Epist. 113.
[831] Concil. Parisiens, ann. 1212 can. 4 (Harduin. T. VI. P. II. p. 2001).
[832] Ibid. P. II. c. 21, P. III. c. 2 (Harduin. VI. II. 2009, 2011).
[833] Chron. Augustens. ann. 1260 (Freher. et Struv. I. 546-7).
[834] Michel, Théat. Franç. au Moyen Age, p. 23.
[835] Guillel. de Nangis ann. 1299.
[836] Cæsar. Heisterbach. Dial. Mirac. Dist. XII. c. xx. xxi.
[837] Chron. Casinens. Lib. III. cap. xxxix.
[838] Concil. Hammaburg. ann. 1406 (Hartzheim VI. 2).
[839] Constit. Sicular. Lib. III. Tit. 25 c. 1.
It is possible that Frederick’s legislation may have attracted attention to the irregularities of the Neapolitan church, for in 1230 Gregory IX. addressed an encyclical letter to the prelates of that kingdom “præsertim super cohabitatione mulierum;” and two years later he deemed it necessary to repeat his admonitions.—Raynaldi Annal. ann. 1230 No. 20.
[840] Baluz. et Mansi I. 211.
[841] Specul. Saxon. Lib. III. art. 45.
[842] Richstich Landrecht, Lib. II. c. 25.
[843] Michelet, Origines des Loix, p. 68. This popular phrase gives point to the story told by Henri Estienne of a German ambassador to Rome, to whom, on his farewell audience, the pope gave a message to his master, commencing, “Tell our well-beloved son”—The honest Teuton could not contain himself at what he took to be a flagrant insult, and he interrupted the diplomatic courtesies with an angry exclamation that his noble master was not the son of a priest.—Apol. pour Herodote, Liv. I. chap. iii.
[844] This admirable prelate, after enjoying the episcopate for twenty-seven years, was at length deposed in 1274 by Gregory X., at the council of Lyons, in consequence of his excesses “præsertem de deflorationibus virginum, stupris matronarum et incestibus monialium” (Chron. Cornel. Zanfliet, ann. 1272). For some details of his excesses, see the epistle addressed to him by Gregory X. in Hardouin, Concil. T. VII. p. 665. As Gregory had been archdeacon of Liége, he was probably familiar with the subject. Henry’s promotion to the see of Liége was part of the policy of Innocent IV. in elevating William of Holland, his brother, to the imperial throne as a competitor to Frederic II. By special dispensation Henry had enjoyed the see for ten years before he was ordained to the priesthood, and after his degradation he infested the bishopric for twelve years, until his death, one of his exploits being the killing of his successor, John of Enghien.—Hist. Monast. S. Laurent. Leodiens. Lib. V. c. 69 (Martene Ampl. Collect. IV. 1105).
[845] Concil. German. ann. 1225 c. 5 (Hartzheim III. 521). This council was assembled to check the prevalent vices of concubinage and simony, and its elaborate provisions show how fruitless previous efforts had been.
[846] Gudeni Cod. Diplom. II. 36.—Not a few testaments of this kind are preserved.
[847] Concil. Fritzlar. ann. 1246 can. xi. (Hartzheim III. 574).
[848] Concil. Coloniens. ann. 1260 c. 1.
[849] Concil. Mogunt. ann. 1261 can. xxvii. xxxix. (Hartzheim III. 604, 607). The latter canon is very prolix and earnest, and inveighs strongly against the “cullagium,” or payment exacted by archdeacons and deans for permitting irregularities. The authorities apparently grew gradually tired of attempting the impossible. In 1284 the council of Passau, in a series of long and elaborate canons, contented itself with a vague threat of prosecuting priests who publicly kept concubines, and with prohibiting them from ostentatiously celebrating the marriage of their children.—Concil. Patav. ann. 1284 can. ix. xxxi. (Ibid. pp. 675, 679).
[850] Synod. Olomucens. ann. 1342 cap. viii. (Hartzheim IV. 338).
[851] Synod. Wratislav. ann. 1416 § 1 (Hartzheim V. 153).
[852] Concil. Melfitan. ann. 1284 c. v. (Martene Ampl. Coll. VII. 285-6).
[853] Giannone, Apologia cap. XIV.—Ancarono gave his name to one of the most celebrated colleges of law in Bologna.—Bruni Vita Gabrielis Palæoti c. 4 (Martene Ampl. Coll. VI. 1390).
[854] Gobelinæ Personæ Cosmodrom. Ætat. VI. c. 92, 93.—How utterly monastic discipline was neglected in Germany is shown by the fact that a century earlier, in 1307, a council of Cologne found it necessary to denounce the frequency with which nuns were seduced, left their convents, lived in open and public profligacy, and then returned unblushingly to their establishments, where they seem to have been received as a matter of course.—Concil. Colon. ann. 1307 c. xvii. (Hartzheim IV. 113). That this had little effect is proved by a repetition of the threats of punishment, three years later (Concil. Colon. ann. 1310 c. ix.; Hartzheim IV. 122). In 1347, John van Arckel, Bishop of Utrecht, was obliged to prohibit men from having access to the nunneries of his diocese, in order to put an end to the scandals which were apparently frequent (Hartzheim IV. 350). In 1350, the Emperor Charles IV. felt called upon to address an earnest remonstrance to the Archbishop of Mainz concerning the unclerical habits of his canons and clergy who spent the revenues of the church in jousts and tourneys, and who, in dress, arms, and mode of life, were not to be distinguished from laymen (Ibid. IV. 358). How little was effected by these efforts is manifest when, in 1360, William, Archbishop of Cologne, was obliged to refute the assertions of those monks and nuns who alleged in their defence that custom allowed them to leave their convents and contract marriage (Ibid. IV. 493).
[855] Henke, Append. ad Calixt. pp. 585-6.
[856] Trithem. Chron. Hirsaug. ann. 1128.—Platina sub Honor. II.
[857] Arnulphi Lexoviens. de Schismate cap. iii. (D’Achery I. 156).
[858] Anacleti Antipapæ Epist. X. (Martene Ampliss. Collect. I. 702).
[859] Matt. Paris ann. 1251.
[860] Matt. Paris Hist. Angl. ann. 1253.—The same author preserves a legend that when Innocent IV. heard of the death of Grosseteste, he ordered a letter to be prepared commanding Henry III. to dig up and cast out the remains of the bishop. The following night, however, Grosseteste appeared in his episcopal robes and with his crozier inflicted a severe castigation on the vengeful pope, who thereupon abandoned his unchristian purpose.—Ibid. ann. 1254.
[861] Portions of Petrarch’s descriptions are unfit for transcription; the following, however, will give a sufficient idea of his experience. “Veritas ibi dementia est, abstinentia vero rusticitas, pudicitia probrum ingens. Denique peccandi licentia magnanimitas et libertas eximia, et quo pollutior eo clarior vita, quo plus scelerum eo plus gloriæ, bonum nomen cœno vilius, atque ultima mercium fama est.... Taceo utriusque pestis artifices, et concursantes pontificum thalamis proxonætas.... Quis, oro, enim non irascatur et rideat, illos senes pueros coma candida, togis amplissimis, adeoque lascivientibus animis ut nihil illuo falsius videatur quam quod ait Maro ‘Frigidus in Venerem senior.’ Tam calidi tamque præcipites in Venerem senes sunt, tanta eos ætatis et status et virium capit oblivio, sic in libidines inardescunt, sic in omne ruunt dedecus, quasi omnis eorum gloria non in cruce Christi sit, sed in commessationibus et ebrietatibus, et quæ has sequuntur in cubilibus, impudicitiis: ... atque hoc unum senectutis ultimæ lucrum putant, ea facere quæ juvenes non auderent.... Mitto stupra, raptus, incestus, adulteria qui jam pontificalis lasciviæ ludi sunt,” etc. (Lib. sine Titulo Epist. xvi.).
In his VII. Eclogue Petrarch describes the cardinals individually. Their portraits, though metaphorically drawn, correspond with the general character of the above extracts. See also the Lib. sine Titulo Epistt. vii. viii. ix.
[862] Nic. de Clamengiis de Ruina Ecclesiæ cap. xvii.—Cf. Theod. a Niem Nemor. Union. Tract. VI. cap. xxxvi. xxxvii.
[863] Quod dominus Johannes papa cum uxore fratris sui et cum sanctis monialibus incestum, cum virginibus stuprum, et cum conjugatis adulterium et alia incontinentiæ crimina, propter quæ ira Dei descendit in filios diffidentiæ commisit.... Item quod dictus dominus Johannes papa fuit et sit homo peccator, notorie criminosus de homicidio, veneficio, et aliis gravibus criminibus quibus irretitus dicitur graviter diffamatus, dissipator bonorum ecclesiæ et dilapidator eorundem, notorius simoniacus, pertinax hæreticus et ecclesiam Christi notorie scandalizans. Item quod dictus Johannes Papa XXIII. sæpe et sæpius coram diversis prælatis et aliis honestis et probis viris pertinaciter, diabolo suadente, dixit, asseruit, dogmatizavit et adstruxit, vitam æternam non esse, neque aliam post hanc, etc.—Concil. Constantiens. Sess. XI.
Even supposing some of these special charges to have been manufactured for the purpose of effecting the desirable political object of getting rid of the objectionable pontiff, yet the profound conviction of his vileness, evinced by the proffering of such accusations, is almost equally damaging.
[864] Theod. a Niem de Vit. Joann. XXIII.
[865]
Leno vorax, pathicus, meretrix, delator, adulter, Si Romam veniet, illico, cretus erit. Pædico insignis, prædo furiosus, adulter, Exitiumque Urbis, perniciesque Dei, Gaude prisce Nero, superat te crimine Sixtus, Hic scelus omne simul clauditur et vitium.
Steph. Infessuræ Diar. Rom. ann. 1484 (Eccard. Corp. Hist. II. 1941).
[866]
Innocuo priscos æquam est debere Quirites. Progenie exhaustam restituit patriam.
(Sannazarii Epigram. Lib. I.)
[867]
Spurcities, gula, avaritia, atque ignavia deses, Hoc, Octave, jacent quo tegeris tumulo.
(Marulli Epigram. Lib. IV.)
[868] Sannazaro, as was meet in a Neapolitan, hated Alexander cordially, and was never weary of assailing his wickedness. The relations between him and his daughter Lucretia were a favorite topic—
Ergo te semper cupiet Lucretia Sextus? O fatum diri nominis! hic pater est?
(Sannazar. Epigr. Lib. II.)
Humana jura, nec minus cœlestia, Ipsosque sustulit Deos: Ut silicet liceret (heu scelus) patri Natæ sinum permingere, Nec execrandis abstinere nuptiis Timore sublato simul.
(Ibid.)
The well-known epigram of Pontanus tersely describes another of his vices—
Vendit Alexander sacramenta, altaria, Christum. Emerat ille prius, vendere jure potest.
[869] In comparing the labors of the pope with those of St. Paul, St. Bernard exclaims, “Numquid ad eum de toto orbe confluebant ambitiosi, avari, simoniaci, sacrilegi, concubinarii, incestuosi, et quæque istiusmodi monstra hominum, ut ipsius apostolica auctoritate vel obtinerent ecclesiasticos honores, vel retinerent?”—De Consideratione Lib. I. c. iv.
[870] According to St. Bonaventura, this scandalous doctrine was frequently taught.—Libell. Apologet. Quæst. I.
[871] Dial Mirac. Dist. XII. c. xix.
[872] Hali Meidenhad. (Early English Text Society, 1866.) The author at times trenches closely on Manichæism. It is true that he revives, with some variation, the ancient computation of the relative merits of the various conditions of life—“For wedlock has its fruit thirtyfold in heaven, widowhood sixtyfold; maidenhood with a hundredfold overpasses both” (p. 22); but while he thus faintly disavows an intention to revile marriage, he again and again alludes to it as wicked and impure _per se_. “Well were it for them, were they on the day of their bridal borne to be buried.... If thou askest why God created such a thing to be, I answer thee: God created it never such; but Adam and Eve turned it to be such by their sin, and marred our nature” (p. 8).
Virginity he asserts to be the highest attribute of humanity, and in heaven virgins are the equals of angels and the superiors of saints.—“Maidenhood is a grace granted thee from heaven.... ’Tis a virtue above all virtues, and to Christ the most acceptable of all” (p. 10). “To sing that sweet song and that heavenly music which no saints may sing, but maidens only in heaven.... But the maiden’s song is altogether unlike these, being common to them with angels. Music beyond all music in heaven. In their circle is God himself; and his dear mother, the precious maiden, is hidden in that blessed company of gleaming maidens, nor may any but they dance and sing” (pp. 18-20).
As for matrimony and maternity, nothing can redeem them in the eyes of the ascetic.—“All other sins are nothing but sins, but this is a sin and besides denaturalizes thee and dishonoreth thy body. It soileth thy soul and maketh it guilty before God, and, moreover, defileth thy flesh.... Now what joy hath the mother? She hath from the misshapen child sad care and shame, both, and for the thriving one fear, till she lose it for good, though it would never have been in being for the love of God, nor for the hope of heaven, nor for the dread of hell” (p. 34).—But I dare not follow him in his more nauseous flights of imagination.
This is by no means a solitary example. The same pious obscenity is to be found, for instance, in some of Abelard’s theological speculations addressed to Heloise and her nuns, as in his solution of her 42nd problem.
[873] Ayenbite of Inwyt, p. 328 (Early English Text Soc. 1866). This is a translation made in 1340 of “Le Somme des Vices et des Vertues,” written in 1279 for Philippe-le-Hardi, by Laurentius Gallus. The author is not a whit behind his brother ascetics in extolling the praises of virginity.—“Vor maydenhod is a tresor of zuo grat worth thet hit ne may by be nonen y-zet a pris ... vor maidenhod aboue alle othre states berth thet gretteste frut” (Ibid. p. 233-4). The legend would seem to be suggested by a somewhat similar story narrated by Gregory the Great (Dialog. Lib. III. cap. 7).
[874] Theophili Alexandrin. Commonitor. can. v. (Harduin. I. 1198).
[875] Innocent. III. Regest. Lib. XVI. Epist. 118.
The curiously artificial standard of morals thus created may be estimated from the case of the archdeacon of Lisieux, who refused to accept an election to the see of that place on account of his inability to maintain the purity requisite for the episcopal office. Vanquished at length by the importunity of his friends, he was consecrated, and resolutely undertook to abandon his evil habits. The unaccustomed privation brought on a fearful disease, but though assured that his life would prove a sacrifice if he persisted in his resolution, he resisted all entreaties, and refused to purchase existence by sullying his position. He thus fell a martyr to a tenderness of conscience which had not prevented him from indulgence while filling the responsible position of archdeacon.—Girald. Cambrens. Gemm. Eccles. Dist. II. cap. xi.
[876] Graviore autem sunt animadversione plectendi, qui proprias filias spirituales, quas baptizaverint vel semel ad confessionem admiserint, violaverint.—Constit. Synod. Gilb. Episc. Circestrens. ann. 1289 (Wilkins, II. 169). Cf. Synod. Cenomanens. ann. 1248 (Martene Ampl. Coll. VII. 1375). Concil. Remens. ann. 1408 cap. 21 (Ibid. VII. 418). Concil. Salisburg. XXX. can. de Confess. (Dalham, Concil. Salisburg. p. 155.)
Abelard (Sermo XXIX.) in a passage which, though addressed to the virgins of the Paraclete, is hardly quotable, asserts the frequent corruption of nuns by their spiritual directors. See also St. Bonaventura, Tractatus quare Fr. Minores prædicent, (Romæ 1773, p. 431) and Gerson, who retorts the charge on the friars, in his Tract. de Reform. Eccles. in Concil. Constant. cap. x. (Von der Hardt, T. I. P. v. p. 93). Cf. Marsilii Patav. Defens. Pacis P. II. cap. xvii.—Synod. Andegavens. ann. 1262 cap. x.; ann. 1291 cap. 1; ann. 1312 cap. 1 (D’Achery I. 727, 735, 742). Similar allusions are unfortunately too frequent, and, as we shall see hereafter, are to be found until a recent period.
[877] In 1398, Cardinal Peter d’Ailly, Bishop of Cambrai, speaks of the manner in which his clergy lived with their concubines as man and wife, and brought up their children without concealment in their houses—“tenentes secum in suis domibus suas concubinas, et mulieres publice suspectas, in scandalum plurimorum cohabitant simul copulati, eisdem domo, mensa, et lecto, residendo, acsi essent vir et uxor matrimonialiter conjuncti: proles super terram gradientes ex hujusmodi suis concubinis susceptas una cum eisdem in suis domibus publice secum habendo et tenendo”—(Hartzheim VI. 709).
[878] Prout testatur nimia de plerisque regionibus clamans Christiani populi corruptela, quæ cum deberet ex sacerdotalis antidoti curari medelis, invalescit proh dolor! ex malorum contagione quod procedit a clero.—Chron. Augustens. ann. 1260.
[879] According to Thomas of Cantinpré, this occurrence took place at Paris, in a synod held in 1248, and Satan explained his candor by saying that he was compelled to it by God.—(Hartzheim IX. 663.)
[880] Inter alia dixit quod prælati faciebant ruere totum mundum.... Unde monuit eos quod ipsi se corrigerent ... alioquin dixit se dure acturum cum ipsis super reformatione morum.—Harduin. VII. 692.
[881] Clerici et presbyteri ... maxime per fetidum peccatum luxuriæ seipsos et alios pertrahunt ad infernum.—Concil. Parisiens. ann. 1323 can. iii. (Martene Ampl. Coll. VII. 1289).
[882] Petri de Herentals Vit. Gregor. XI. ann. 1375 (_ap._ Hecker, Epidemics of the Middle Ages, London, 1845, p. 153).
[883] “Swiche preestes be the sones of Hely ... hem thinketh that they be free and have no juge, no more than hath a free boll, that taketh which cow that him liketh in the toun. So faren they by women; for right as on free boll is ynough for all a toun, right so is a wicked preest corruption ynough for all a parish, or for all a countree.”
[884] Li Gieus de Robin et de Marion (Michel, Théatre Français au Moyen Age, p. 129).
[885] Wright’s Edition, p. 491, l. 1359.
[886] Monumenta Franciscana, pp. 602-4.
This testimony concerning the Franciscans is not confined to heretics and laymen. Early in the fifteenth century, a council of Magdeburg took occasion to reprove them for the dissolute and unclerical mode of life of which they offered a conspicuous example. It appears that they dignified with the name of “Marthas” the female companions who, in primitive ages, were known as “agapetæ,” and who had latterly acquired among the secular clergy the title of “focariæ”—“et in domibus suis frequenter soli cum mulieribus quas ipsorum _Martas_ (ut eorum verbis utamur) habitare non verentur.”—Concil. Magdeburg, ann. 1403 Rubr. de Pœnis. (Hartzheim V. 717.)
On the other hand, in the “Creed of Piers Ploughman,” a Franciscan attacks the Carmelites—
They been but jugulers, And japers of kynde; Lorels and lechures, And lemans holden.
* * * * *
And that wicked folk Wymmen betraieth, And begileth hem her good With glaverynge wordes, And therwith holden her hous In harlotes warkes.
Wright’s Edition, pp. 453-4.
[887] This was written in answer to an attack on celibacy by Guillaume Saignet, entitled “Lamentatio ob cœlibatu sacerdotum, sive Dialogus Nicænæ Constitutionis et Naturæ ea di re conquerentis.”—Zaccaria, Storia Polemica del Celibato Sacro, Præf. p. xiv.
[888] Vel inexperti forte erant hi doctores quam generale et quam radicatum sit hoc malum, et quod deteriora flagitia circa uxores aut filias parochianorum et abominationes horrendæ in aliis provenerint apud multas patrias, rebus stantibus ut stant, si quærentur per tales censuras arceri. Scandalum certe magnum est apud parochianos curati ad concubinam ingressus, sed longe deterius si erga parochianas suas non servaverit castitatem.—De Vita Spirit. Animæ Lect. IV. Corol. xiv. prop. 3.
[889] De Statu. Relig. Lib. I. (Giannone Apolog. cap. 14).
[890] There is a tradition that the Abbey of Montariol lost its sovereignty over the inhabitants of the village of that name in consequence of a revolt caused by the monks exacting this feudal right in all its odious cynicism, in place of receiving a payment in commutation as was frequently done. A lively controversy has arisen over the exactness of this tradition, and the Abbé Marcellin, in his edition of Le Bret’s _Histoire de Montauban_ seems to me to have successfully proved its falsity. He admits, however, that in his researches on the subject he has found one case in which an ecclesiastic undertook to enforce his rights to the letter; and the President Boyer, writing in the sixteenth century (Decisiones, No. 17 Decis. 297) asserts that he had seen the proceedings of a lawsuit in which “Rector seu curatus parochialis prætendebat ex consuetudine primam habere sponsæ cognitionem” (Eschbach, Introduction a l’Étude du Droit, § 174). In some remote portions of France the tribute was still exacted “en nature” by temporal seigneurs as late as the sixteenth century, as appears from documents printed by MM. Mazure et Hatoulet (Fors de Béarn, p. 172). Velly (Hist. de France, Paris, 1770, T. III. p. 325) quotes from Laurière a document of 1507 which, in recounting the privileges of the barony of Saint-Martin states that the Comte d’Eu has the “droit de prélibation” there, and Boutaric (Droits Seigneuriaux, Toulouse, 1775, p. 650) remarks that he has met nobles who pretended to possess the right, but that it had been abolished by the courts. In 1854 M. Bouthors, in his “Coutumes locales du bailliage d’Amiens,” chanced to allude to a custom by which the episcopal officers until 1607 exacted a tribute from newly married couples for permission to pass together the first three nights after the wedding—a custom growing out of the old _droit de marquette_. This aroused the ire of the faithful, and M. Louis Veuillot wrote a treatise in which he emphatically denied that such a right had ever existed, and a lively controversy arose on the subject. M. Lagréze (Hist. du Droit dans les Pyrénées, Paris, 1867, p. 390) has examined the matter thoroughly and the proof which he accumulates of the existence of the right is indisputable, though he denies that it was ever claimed by ecclesiastics.
[891] See the _Taxæ Sacræ Pœnitentiariæ_, a tariff of prices for absolution in the Roman curia for all infractions of human and divine law, of which more hereafter.
Heretically inclined reformers did not hesitate to accuse the clergy of thus speculating in the power of the keys and the sins of the people—
The power of the apostles Thei pasen in speche, For to sellen the synnes For selver other mede. And purliche _a pœna_, The puple asoyleth, And _a culpa_ also, That they may katchen Money other money-worth, And mede to fonge; And ben at lone and at bode, As burgeises useth. Thus they serven Sathanas, And soules bygyleth, Marchaunes of malisones, Mansede wrecches.
Creed of Piers Ploughman, l. 1417-32.
[892] The curious confusion of vice with religion, fostered by mediæval sacerdotalism, is well illustrated by the complaint which Erasmus puts in the mouth of the Virgin—“Et nonnumquam ea petunt a virgine quæ verecundus juvenis vix auderet petere a lena, quæque ne pudet literis committere” (Erasmi Colloq. Peregrinatio Religionis). The existence of such inconsistencies is one of the unfathomable mysteries of human intelligence.
[893] Anon. Cartusiens. de Religionum Orig. cap. 17-19 (Martene Ampl. Coll. VI. 40-46).
[894] See Lecky’s History of Rationalism.
[895] Videlicet castitatem, obedientiam ... atque vivere sine proprio.—Statut. Ord. S. Johan. Hierosol. Tit. I. § 1 (Lünig Cod. Ital. Diplom. T. II. p. 1743).
[896] Thus Cap. LV.: “Hoc enim injustum consideramus ut cum fratribus Deo castitatem promittentibus fratres hujusmodi in una eademque domo maneant.” Cap. LVI. and LXXII., by the latter of which even the kiss of a mother was denied them, render evident the extreme asceticism which was proposed by the founders of the order (Harduin. T. VI. P. II. pp. 1142, 1146).
At a subsequent period we learn that the Templar’s oath of initiation promised “obedientiam, castitatem, vivere sine proprio, et succurrere terræ sanctæ pro posse suo.” It was, moreover, enjoined upon them not to enter a house in which a woman lay in child-bed, not to be present at the celebration of weddings or the purification of women, nor to receive any service from a woman, even water for washing the hands.—See the proceedings against them in 1309, in Wilkins, II. 331 et seq.
[897] Rymer, Fœdera, I. 55.
[898] Wilkins II. 331-2.—Raynouard, Condamnation des Templiers, p. 83.
[899] Alexandri III. Epist. Append. III. No. 20 (Harduin. VI. P. II. p. 1557).
[900] Raynald. Annal. ann. 1210 No. 6, 7; ann. 1223 No. 54; ann. 1496 No. 33.
[901] Concil Vallis-oletan. ann. 1322 can vi. (Aguirre V. 243).
[902] Concil. Dertusan. ann. 1429 can. iii. (Harduin. VIII. 1076).
[903] Raynaldi Annal. ann. 1441 No. 20.—The Order of Calatrava was under the strictest of the rules, the Cistercian. (Giustiniani, Ordini Militari s. v.)
[904] Reg. Ord. Mil. Avisii a B. Joanne Cirita edita (Migne’s Patrologia, T. 188, p. 1669).
[905] Alexander’s Bull declares that “Milites dictarum militiarum pro majori parte, continentiæ et castitatis voto, qui in eorum professione emittunt, contempto, concubinas etiam plures, et in eorum ac præceptoriarum et prioratum dictarum militarum propriis domibus et locis, non sine magno religionis opprobrio, publice tenere et eis cohabitare, et etiam adulteria cum aliis mulieribus conjugatis committere non verentur: ex quo ab eorundem regnorum incolis et habitatoribus maximo odio habentur, dissensiones et inimicitiæ oriuntur, diversa scandala quotidie concitantur etc.”—Raynaldi Annal. ann. 1496 No. 33.
[906] Osorii de Reb. Emmanuelis R. Lusitan. Lib. I. (Edit. Colon. 1574, p. 12_a_.)
[907] Patrologia, T. 188, p. 1674.
[908] Statut. Ord. S. Johan. Hierosol. Tit. XVIII. § 50.
[909] Ibid. Tit. XVIII. § 51.
[910] See the supplication of Rodolph of Hapsburg to the Pope for assistance to the order.—Cod. Epist. Rodolphi I. No. xcix. (Lipsiæ, 1806).
[911] Anon. Cartus. de Relig. Orig. cap. XXVIII. (Martene Ampliss. Coll. VII. 62).
[912] Communis opinio Catharorum est quod matrimonium carnale fuit semper mortale peccatum, et quod non punietur quis gravius in futuro propter adulterium vel incestum quam propter legitimum conjugium, nec etiam inter eos propter hoc aliquis gravius puniretur.—Summa F. Renieri (Martene Thesaur. V. 1761).
This Regnier describes himself as a heresiarch previous to his conversion, and his summary of the creed of his former associates may be regarded as correct in the main, though perhaps somewhat heightened in repulsiveness. For further details see _ante_, p. 208.
[913] Bernardi Serm. lxvi. in Cantica §§ 9, 11.
[914] Bernardi Serm. lxv. in Cantica, §§ 4, 5.—“Cum femina semper esse et non cognoscere feminam, nonne plus est quam mortuum suscitare? Quod minus est non potes; et quod majus est vis credam tibi? Quotidie latus tuum ad latus juvenculæ est in mensa; lectus tuus ad lectum ejus in camera, oculi tui ad illius oculos in colloquio, manus tuæ ad manus ipsius in opere: et continens vis putari? Esto ut sis; sed ego suspicione non careo.”
The morality of the age had evidently not impressed the Saint with the conviction of human power to resist temptation.
[915] Pet. Cantor. Verb. Abbreviat. cap. lxxviii.
[916] Bishop Gerard, of Cambrai, confesses this in his refutation of the Artesian Manichiæans in 1025—“De quibus nos responsuros quodam discretionis gubernaculo nostri sermonis carinam subire oportet, ne quasi inter duos scopulos naufragium incurrentes, occasionem demus in alterutrum, scilicet aut omnes indiscrete a conjugiis exterrendo, aut omnes indiscrete ad connubia commonendo.”—Concil. Atrebatens. ann. 1025 cap. x. (Hartzheim III. 89).
When St. Bernard, in his fiery denunciation of the Manichæan errors, exclaimed, “non advertant qualiter omni immunditiæ laxat habenas qui nuptias damnat” (In Cantica Serm. lxvi. § 3), he did not pause to reflect how severe a sentence he was passing on the saints of the fifth century who, as we have seen, would only admit marriage to be a pardonable offence.
[917] Disputat. inter Cathol. et Paterin. c. ii. (Martene Thesaur. V. 1712-13).
It is somewhat singular that Manichæism should have been attributed to a sect of heretics in Bosnia who styled themselves Christians, and who were brought back to the fold in 1203 by a legate of Innocent III. It would appear that, so far from entertaining Manichæan doctrines, neglect of ecclesiastical celibacy was actually one of their erroneous practices, for in their pledge of reformation they promise that separation of man and wife shall thenceforth be enforced “neque de cætero recipiemus aliquem vel aliquam conjugatum, nisi mutuo consensu, continentia promissa, ambo pariter convertantur.”—Batthyani, II. 293.
[918] S. Petri Venerab. contra Petrobrusianos.—S. Bernardi Epist. 241.—Ejusd. Vit. Prim. Lib. VI. Part iii. c. 10.—Guill. de Podio-Laurent. c. i.—Alberic. Trium-Font. Chron. ann. 1148.
[919] Hugon. Rothomag. contra Hæret. Lib. III. cap. vi. This is by no means an unusual specimen of the inconsequential character of mediæval polemics. Archbishop Hugh was a man of mark among his contemporaries, both as a theologian and as a statesman. It was he who, in 1139, at the council of Winchester, saved King Stephen from excommunication by the English bishops. (Willelmi Malmesb. Hist. Novell. Lib. II. § 26.) For a somewhat similar specimen of fanciful theology, the reader may consult the exposition of the esoteric meaning of the plagues of Egypt by St. Martin of Leon, a writer of the twelfth century.—S. Martin. Legionens. Serm. xv.
[920] Epist. ad Lucium PP. Epist. 4. (Migne’s Patrologia, T. CLXXIX. p. 957.)—Cf. Martene Ampliss. Collect. I. 177.
[921] Guillielm. de Newburgh, Lib. I. cap. 19.—Ottonis Frising. de Gest. Frid. I. Lib. I. cap. liv., lv.—Sigeberti Chron. Continuat. Gemblac. ann. 1146.—Ejusdem Continuat. Præmonstrat. ann. 1148.—Roberti de Monte Chron. ann. 1148.—The detailed account given by William of Newburgh he professes to have gathered from some of Éon’s followers performing penitential pilgrimages after the death of the heresiarch.
[922] Conrad. Urspergens. ann. 1212.—“Hoc quoque probrosum in eis videbatur, quod viri et mulieres simul ambulabant in via, et plerumque simul manebant in una domo, ut de eis diceretur, quod quandoque simul in lectulis accubabant.” The follies of the early Christians were doubtless imitated by the new sectaries. As early as 1197 we find them denounced as heretics, under the various names of Waldenses, Poor Men of Lyons, and Sabatati, and condemned to the stake by the council of Girona, in Aragon.—Aguirre V. 103.
[923] La Nobla Leyczon, 408-13.—There has been considerable discussion as to the date of this work. It appears to me to bear the mark of more than one period, or, at least, of successive recensions. Internal evidence shows the beginning to have been written about the year 1100, while the later portion, commencing about l. 345, seems to have been composed subsequently to the persecutions of the early part of the 13th century.
[924] Bernardi Fontis Calidi Lib. contra Waldenses.—Alani de Insulis contra Hæret. Lib. II.
[925] La Nobla Leyczon, 242-3.
[926] Ibid., 88.
[927] Camerarii Hist. de Fratrum Orthodox. Ecclesiis pp. 104-7, 116-7.
[928] Pluquet, Dictionnaire des Hérésies, art. Vaudois.
[929] The heresy of one age becomes the orthodoxy of another. The views of St. Francis, when promulgated in the fifth century by the Timotheists, were stigmatized as heretical.—V. Harduin. Concil. I. 525.
[930] Concil. Mogunt. ann. 1261 can. xlviii. (Hartzheim III. 612, 615).
The decline of the order from the asceticism of its founder afforded a fair mark for satire—
Seyn that they folwen Fully Fraunceyses rewle, That in cotinge of his cope Is more cloth y-folden Than was in Fraunceis froc When he hem first made. And yet under that cope A cote hathe he furred With foyns or with fichewes Other fyn bevere, And that is cutted to the kne, And queyntly y-botened, Lest any spiritual man Aspie that gyle. Fraunceys bad his brethern Bar-fot to wenden; Now han they buckled shone, For blenyng of her heles, And hosen in hard weder Y-hamled by the ancle, And spicerie sprad in her purs To parten where hem luste.
Creed of Piers Ploughman l. 579-600.
[931] Thus, a council held at Cologne in 1306, in denouncing the mendicancy of the Begghards, quotes Gen. III. 18: “In sudore vultus tui vesceris pane tuo,” and proceeds: “Quod ad fortes et sui compotes moraliter intelligitur esse dictum: et tales in ocio victum vendicantes, eleemosynas rapiunt, quæ infirmis et debilibus fuerant pauperibus ministrandæ.” And in objecting to their views of celibacy, “Ajunt etiam: Nisi mulier virginitatem in matrimonio deperditam doleat et dolendo deploret, salvari non potest: quasi matrimonium sit peccatum, cum tamen ipsum ante peccatum in loco sancto a sanctorum sanctissimo fuerit institutum: quæ virginitas in fœtum sobolis compensatur, per quam humana natura stabilitate perdurat,” which contrasts strangely with the teachings quoted above from “Hali Meidenhad.” Great stress, moreover, is laid upon the indissolubility of the marriage vow and the wickedness of separating husband and wife:—“Quomodo spiritu Dei agantur qui contra spiritum Dei agunt, prohibentis virum ab uxore, et e converso sine causa dimitti?”—Concil. Coloniens. ann. 1306 cap. i., ii. (Hartzheim IV. 100-101). The good fathers of the council were discreetly blind to the antagonism of their teachings to the received doctrines and practices of the church.
[932] A collection of documents illustrating the history of this singular and powerful sect will be found in Baluze and Mansi III. 206 et seq.
How persistent and profound was the conviction which created the heresy is shown by its prolonged existence. Even as late as 1421 Martin V. found it necessary to issue a Bull denouncing it (Raynaldi Annal. ann. 1421 No. 4); and in Germany the council of Wurzburg in 1446 revived the old denunciations against the Begghards and Beguines (Hartzheim V. 336).
[933] Their customary salutation and password was an invocation of the fallen angel—“Salutet te injuriam passus.”—“May the wronged one preserve thee!”—Trithem. Chron. Hirsaug. ann. 1315.
[934] Trithem. loc. cit.—Raynaldi Annal. ann. 1318 No. 44.—Hartzheim Concil. German. IV. 630.
[935] Krasinski, Reformation in Poland, I. 55-56.
[936] Inter omnia monstra quæ unquam intraverunt ecclesiam, monstrum horum fratrum est seductivius, infundabilius, et a veritate ac a charitate distantius.—Univ. Oxon. Litt. de Error. Wicklif. Art. 103 (Wilkins III. 344).
[937] Trialogi Lib. IV. cap. 15.
[938] A Wickliffite tract (“De Officio Pastorali,” published by Prof. Lechler, Leipzig, 1863) takes strong ground on this point. Speaking of unchaste priests, it says (P. I. cap. viii. pp. 16-17), “Talis sic notorie sustentans curatum dat imprudenter elemosinam contra Christum ... periculosum peccatum est crimini consentire; sed sic faciunt qui taliter curato in temporalibus subministrant.” And again (P. I. cap. xvii.), “Subditi enim non debent audire missam talium sacerdotum, et per consequens non debent dare sibi oblaciones vel decimas, ne videantur consencientes crimini sic notorio in curatis.”
[939] Si Deus est, domini temporales possunt legitime ac meritorie auferre bona fortunæ ab ecclesia delinquente.—Conclus. Magist. Johan. Wycliff. Art. vi. (Wilkins III. 123).
Licet regibus auferre temporalia a viris ecclesiasticis ipsis abutentibus habitualiter. Ibid. Art. xvii.
So in the proceedings conducted by Courtenay, Archbishop of Canterbury, against Wickliffe in 1382, among the articles presented as extracted from his writings were—
Art. 4. Quod si episcopus vel sacerdos existat in peccato mortali, non ordinat, consecrat nec baptizat.
Art. 16. Quod nullus est dominus civilis, nullus est episcopus, nullus est prælatus dum est in peccato mortali (Wilkins III. 157).
Even “verbum otiosum” and “ira quantumlibet levis” were denounced by him as mortal sins according to the University of Oxford.—Litt. de Error. Art. 210, 211 (Wilkins III. 347).
[940] Arnold’s Select English Works of John Wyclif, Vol. II. p. v.—Vol. I. p. 364.
[941] “God ordeyned prestis in the olde lawe to have wyves, and nevere forbede it in the newe lawe, neither bi Crist ne bi his apostlis, but rathere aprovede it. But now, bi ypocrisie of fendis and fals men, manye binden hem to presthod and chastite, and forsaken wifis bi Goddis lawe, and schenden maydenes and wifis and fallen foulest of alle.”—Of Weddid Men and Wifis, cap. i. (Arnold’s Wyclif, III. 190; also in Vaughan’s Tracts of John de Wyckliffe p. 58).—See also The Seven Deadly Sins, cap. xxx. (Arnold, Vol. III. p. 163).
In the tract “De Officio Pastorale,” alluded to above, there is a similar passage—“conjugium secundum legem Christi eis licitum odiunt ut venenum, et seculare dominium eis a Christo prohibitum nimis avide amplexantur” (P. II. cap. xi. pp. 50-51).
It is to be borne in mind that at this period no one assumed that clerical celibacy had been ordained of Christ or the Apostles.
[942] Trialogi Lib. III. c. 22, 23; Lib. IV. 16 (Ed. Lechler, Oxford 1869).—Cf. Apology for Lollard Doctrines, p. 38 (Ed. Camden Soc.).
[943] Wilkins III. 229,—Trialogi Lib. IV. c. 20.
[944] Conclusiones Lollardorum (Wilkins III. 221-3).
[945] Wilkins III. 248.
[946] In 1426, ten years after the execution of Lord Cobham, a Franciscan named Thomas Richmond was brought before the council of York for publicly preaching the high Wickliffite doctrine “Sacerdos in peccato mortali lapsus, non est sacerdos. Item quod ecclesia nolente vel non puniente fornicarios, licitum est sæcularibus eosdem pœna carceris castigare, et ad hoc astringuntur vinculo charitatis” (Wilkins III. 488). This practical application of the Hildebrandine principle did not suit the church of the fifteenth century. It was pronounced heretical, and Friar Thomas was forced to recant.
Equally offensive to the memory of Gregory was the decision of the Sorbonne in 1486, condemning as heretical the propositions of the puritan Bishop of Meaux—“3. Un prêtre fornicateur ne doit pas dire Dominus vobiscum ni reciter l’office en aucun lieu sacré. Ce qui est faux et suspect d’heresie.”—“4. Les sacremens administrez ou l’office dit par un tel prêtre ne valent pas mieux que les cris des chiens. Proposition fausse et erronée dans la premiere partie, héretique scandaleuse et offensant les oreilles pieuses dans la seconde.”—Fleury, Hist. Eccles. Liv. CXVI. No. 39.
[947] When, after the fearful disaster of Taas, the council of Bâle, in 1432, commenced the conferences which resulted in the nominal reconciliation of the Hussites, the fathers of the council were much scandalized at hearing the Bohemian deputies reverently quote Wickliffe as the Evangelical Doctor. In fact, Peter Payne, his disciple, who did so much to promulgate his doctrines in Bohemia, was one of the disputants (Hartzheim V. 762-4). Even as early as 1403 the errors of Wickliffe were formally condemned by the University of Prague, on presentation by the Ordinary of the diocese, showing that they were already spreading and attracting attention (Höfler, Concil. Pragensia, p. 43.—Prag, 1862).
[948] Artic. Damnat. Joannis Husz, No. viii. x. xi. xii. xiii. xxii. xxx. (Concil. Constantiens. Sess. xv.)—On his examination Huss declared that these articles were exaggerated. See the proceedings in Von der Hardt, T. IV. pp. 309-11. But on the next day he defended a proposition which was virtually identical (Ibid. p. 321).
[949] Poggii Florent. Descript. Hieron. Prag. (Von der Hardt, T. III. p. 69).
[950] Statut. Synod. ann. 1405; 1406 No. 1; 1407 No. 3 (Höfler Concil. Pragens. pp. 50, 54, 69).
[951] Pluquet, Diet. des Hérésies, s. v. Huss.—Synod. Olomucens. ann. 1413 can. 1. “asserentes etiam ... quod bona clericorum male viventium possunt rapere et eos spoliare sine pœna excommunicationis ... Ex eadem radice et hæretica pravitate dicunt alii, quod sacerdos in mortali existens peccato non possit conficere corpus Christi” (Hartzheim V. 39, 40).
[952] Conciliab. Pragens. ann. 1420 can. xii., xiii.—At this time the Hussites had full sway in Bohemia; the council was held by Conrad, Archbishop of Prague, who had adopted their faith, and its canons were intended for the internal regulation of their own church (Hartzheim V. 198). In the long conferences, extending from 1431 to 1438, which resulted in their reunion with the Catholic church, there is no allusion to the subject of celibacy. The four points on which they insisted were, 1st, the communion in both elements; 2d, the reformation of morals by abrogating ecclesiastical immunity; 3d, free preaching of the Scripture; and 4th, the secularization of church property (Ibid. 760-73). How little, in fact, they differed in doctrinal points from Rome is seen in the confession of faith agreed upon at Prague in 1432 (Johan, de Ragus. de Reduct. Bohem. _ap._ Monument. Concil. General. Sæc. xv. pp. 182 sq.).
This did not, however, save them from the customary accusations of immorality. Thus, a contemporary describes the indulgence of indiscriminate intercourse as one of the rules of the sect (Joann. Fistenportii Chron. ann. 1419.—Hahn. Collect. Monument. T. I. p. 403), and, in 1431, Conrad, Archbishop of Mainz, in convoking a council to take action against them, says of the sect “exterminavit clerum et omnem cœlibatum commercio nephando stupravit.”—Gudeni Cod. Diplom. IV. 185.
[953] Epist. Procopii Art. VIII. (Martene Ampl. Coll. VIII. 25).
[954] Petit. Cæsaris No. 12 (Le Plat, Monument. Concil. Trident. V. 348).
[955] Conciliab. Pragens. ann. 1420 can. viii.
[956] Camerarii Hist. Narrat. de Fratrum Orthodox. Ecclesiis in Bohemia, etc. pp. 100, 109-10, 114, 121, 128.
[957] Consensus in Fide inter Ecclesias Evangelicas, etc. Haidelbergæ, 1605.
[958] The spirit of the sectaries of Schmidt is shown by one of their doctrines—“Propter sacerdotum nequitiam, licentiavit Deus et abjecit sacerdotium evangelicum,” and by their argument for abolishing masses for the dead “nihil prosint defunctis, sed sint solatia vivorum et repleant marsupia clericorum.”—Gobelin. Person. Cosmodrom. Ætat. VI. cap. xciii.—Cf. Theod. Vrie, Hist. Concil. Constant. Lib. III. Dist. viii.
[959] See the proceedings in Baluze and Mansi, I. 288-93. As usual, the Men of Intelligence were accused of indulging in promiscuous intercourse.
[960] Even soon after Savonarola’s martyrdom, Julius II. refused to listen to those who desired a condemnation of his memory. Leo X. honored him by celebrating the Epiphany of 1515 in his convent of San Marco. Julius III. declared that he would deem heretical any one who should attack him. Paul IV. assembled a congregation for the purpose of examining and deciding upon his works, and after six months’ labor they reported that his writings were unexceptionable, though a portion which reflected too vigorously on the papal court were declared to be unfitted for general perusal.—Perrens, Jérome Savonarole, Paris 1856, pp. 296-7.
[961] See Baluze et Mansi I. 584-5 for the letters to the Emperor of Germany and King and Queen of Spain. Perrens (op. cit. p. 375) also gives the one addressed to the King of France, while those to the Kings of England and Hungary have apparently been lost.
[962] Taceo de fornicationibus et adulteriis, a quibus qui alieni sunt probro cæteris ac ludibrio esse solent, spadonesque aut sodomitæ appellantur; denique laici usque adeo persuasum habent nullos cœlibes esse, ut in plerisque parochiis non aliter velint presbyterum tolerare nisi concubinam habeat, quo vel sic suis sit consultum uxoribus, quæ nec sic quidem usquequaque sunt extra periculum.—Nic. de Clemangis de Præsul. Simoniac. (Bayle, Dict. Hist. s. v. Hall).
[963] Nic. de Clamengiis Disput. super Mater. Concil. General.
[964] Nic. de Clamengiis de Ruina Ecclesiæ cap. xxii., xxxvi.—Conf. Theobaldi Conquest. (Von der Hardt T. I. P. XIX. p. 909).
[965] P. de Alliaco Canones Reformat, cap. iv. (Von der Hardt T. I. P. VI. p. 425).
[966] Gersoni Declarat, defect, viror. ecclesiast. lxv., lxvi.
[967] Dicimus quod de duobus malis minus est incontinentes tolerare sacerdotes quam nullos habere.—Gersoni Dial. Sophiæ et Naturæ Act. IV.
[968] Ejusd. Sermo de Vita Clericorum.
[969] Theod. a Niem Nemoris Unionis Tract. V. cap. XXXV.
[970] Theod. Vrie Hist. Concil. Constant. Lib. II., III. (Von der Hardt T. I.).
[971] Nic. de Clamengiis, Disput. sup. Mat. Conc. General. This work was written in 1416, after the council had been in session for nearly two years.
[972] Theobaldi Conquestio (Von der Hardt T. I. P. XIX. p. 904).
[973] Item, fistulatores, tubicenæ, joculatores, 516; item, meretrices, virgines publicæ, 718.—Laur. Byzynii Diar. Bell. Hussit. A Catholic contemporary, however, reduces the number of courtezans to 450 and that of jugglers and minstrels to 320 (Joann. Fistenportii Chron. ann. 1415.—Hahn. Collect. Monument. I. 401).
[974] Bernhardi Baptisati Sermo (Von der Hardt T. I. P. XVIII. pp. 884-5).
[975] Concil. Constant. Sess. XLIII. can. de Vita et Honestate Clericorum.
[976] De Ecclesiæ Reformat. Protocoll. cap. xxxiii. (Von der Hardt T. I. P. x. pp. 635-6).
[977] Reformatorii Constant. Decretal. Lib. I. Tit. v. (Ibid. p. 679).
[978] Ibid. Lib. III. Tit. x. cap. 20 (p. 722).
[979] For instance, as regards the religious houses—“In nonnullis quoque monasteriis ... norma disciplinæ respuitur, cultus divinus negligitur, personæ quoque hujusmodi, vitæ ac morum honestate prostrata, lubricitati, incontinentiæ, et aliis variis carnalis concupiscentiæ voluptatibus et viciis non sine gravi divinæ majestatis offensa tabescentes, vitam ducunt dissolutam.”—Martin V. ad Brandam § iii. (Ludewig Reliq. Msctorum. XI. 409).
[980] Usque adeo nonnullorum clericorum corruptela excrevit, ut morum atque honestatis vestigia apud eos pauca admodum remanserint.—Constit. Brandae § 1 (Op. cit. XI. 385). This condition of affairs was not the result of any abandonment of the attempt to enforce the canons. Local synods were meeting every year, and scarcely one of them failed to call attention to the subject, devising fresh penalties to effect the impossible. The result is shown in the lament of the council of Cologne in 1423—“Quia tamen, succrescente malitia temporis moderni, labes hujusmodi criminis in ecclesia Dei in tantum inolevit, quod scandala plurima in populo sunt exorta, et verisimiliter exoriri poterunt in futurum, et ex fide dignorum relatione percepimus quod quidam ecclesiarum prælati et alii, etiam capitula ... tales in suis iniquitatibus sustinuerunt et sustinent.” So far, however, were the decrees of the council from being effective, that the Archbishop was obliged to modify them and to declare that they should only be enforced against those ecclesiastics who were notoriously guilty, and who kept their concubines publicly.—Concil. Coloniens. ann. 1423 can. i. viii. (Hartzheim V. 217, 220).
[981] Ambrosii Camaldulensis Lib. V. Epist. xii. (Martene Ampliss. Collect. III. 119-21). This was not the only case of abbots whose scandalous lives were treated with equal forbearance. See Epistt. xiii., xiv.
[982] Harduini Andegav. Epist. Statut. Præf. (Martene Thesaur. IV. 523-4).
[983] Alan. Charter. Lib. de Exilio (Johan. Mariæ Lib. de Schismat. et Concil.).
[984] Nic. de Clamengiis de Lapsu et Reparat. Justitiæ (Ed. 1519 pp. 13-14).
[985] Wilkins III. 364-5.
[986] Æneæ Sylvii Comment. de Gest. Conc. Basil. ad calcem (Opp. Basil. 1551 pp. 66-70).—Cf. Sigismundi Imp. Avisam. ann. 1433 (Goldast. III. 427 sqq.).
[987] Concil. Basiliens. Sess. xx. (Jan. 22, 1435).
[988] Pragm. Sanct. ann. 1438 cap. 31 (Goldast. I. 403).
[989] Quoniam nostri temporis clerici sunt, heu, affectu crudeles, affatu mendaces, gestu incompositi, victu luxuriosi, actu impii, et sub vacuo sanctitatis nomine sancti nominis derogant disciplinæ (Hartzheim V. 266). The council contented itself with repeating the canons of Bâle.
[990] Lib. III. Tit. i. c. 3, in Septimo.
[991] Quicunque alii concubinas et mulieres hujusmodi, contra præsentem prohibitionem tenere præsumentes, inhabiles censeantur ad beneficia obtinenda, et in dicta curia officia hujusmodi exercenda, nec illorum capaces efficiantur, nisi inhabilitatem suam antea per dictæ sedis literas obtinuerint aboleri.—Ubi sup.
[992] Comp. Doeringii Chron. passim. Döringk was minister or head of the powerful Franciscan order in Saxony, and therefore may be considered an unexceptionable witness.
In the Polish diet of 1459, one of its leading members brought forward a series of propositions which showed the feelings entertained by the people towards papal exactions—“The Bishop of Rome has invented a most unjust motive for imposing taxes—the war against the infidels.... The Pope feigns that he employs his treasures in the erection of churches; but in fact he employs them to enrich his relations,” etc.—Krasinski, Reformation in Poland I. 96.
The councils of Constance and Bâle had produced, for a time, a spirit of great independence. John of Frankfort does not hesitate to declare that the papal authority is not binding when in opposition to the law of God—“Unde patet quod nec papalis vel et imperialis constitutio legi Dei obvians possit dici recta; nec aliquis ipsorum potest licite mandare quod sua constitutio servetur a subditis” (Johann. de Francford. contra Feymeros). According to the decisions of the Decretalists, this was rank heresy, and yet John of Frankfort was one of the leading minds of the period, and of unquestioned orthodoxy. He was a popular preacher, a doctor of theology, chaplain and secretary of the Count Palatine of the Rhine, and a bold disputant against the Hussites. He records with his own hand that, as inquisitor, he convicted and burned, July 4th, 1429, at Lüders, an unfortunate heretic who denied the propriety of invoking the Virgin and the saints. Under the skilful management, however, of Nicholas V. and Pius II. this spirit of independence died away, to again revive, in the next century, in a more determined form.
[993] Ludewig Reliq. Msctorum. XI. 415.—Under Boniface IX., at the commencement of the century, claims arising from simoniacal transactions were constantly and openly prosecuted in the court of the Papal Auditor.—Theod. a Niem de Vit. Joann. XXIII.
[994] Concil. Constantiens. Sess. XI.
[995] Steph. Infessuræ Diar. Roman, ann. 1484 (Eccard. Corp. Hist. III. 1939-40).
[996] “Si vous saviez tout ce que je sais! des choses dégoûtantes! des choses horribles! vous en frémiriez! Quand je pense à tout cela, à la vie que mènent les prêtres, je ne puis retenir mes larmes.” And again, “Ma peggio ancora. Quello che sta la notte con la concubina, quell’ altro con il garzone, e poi la mattina va a dire messa, pensa tu come la va. Che vuoi tu fare di quella messa?”—Jérome Savonarole d’après les Documents Originaux, par F. T. Perrens, pp. 71-2. Paris, 1856.
[997] _Ap._ Chavard, Le Célibat, des Prêtres, p. 400.
[998] Masselin, Journal des États de Tours, pp. 197-99.
What were the teachings and the influence on the people of such a priesthood may be guessed from a remark in one of the sermons of Oliver Maillard, a celebrated Franciscan preacher of the period. “Sunt ne ibi mulieres et sacerdotes qui dicunt quod mulieres comedentes venenum ad expellendum materiam de matrice sua, ne fœtus veniat ad partum, antequam anima rationalis introducatur, non peccant mortaliter?”—Ap. H. Estienne, Apol. pour Herodote Liv. I. chap. vi.
[999] 1 Henr. VII. 4.
[1000] Wilkins III. 630-33.
Yet in the letter of Archbishop Morton to the abbot reciting all these enormities, he is not even threatened with deposition, but only invited to mend his ways.
[1001] Froude’s History of England, Ch. III.
[1002]
Or gef hym self had done a synne By the prestes sybbe kynne, Moder or suster, or hys lemmon Or by hys doghter gef he had on.
John Myrc’s Instructions for Parish Priests, p. 26 (Early English Text Society, 1868).
[1003] Concil. Arandens. ann. 1473 c. ix. (Aguirre V. 345-6).
[1004] Concil. Hispalens. ann. 1512 can. xxvi., xxvii. (Aguirre V. 371-2).
[1005] Statut. Eccles. in Braunschweig. cap. 75 (Mayer, Thes. Jur. Eccles. I. 124).
[1006] Synod. Strigonens. ann. 1382, 1450, 1480 (Batthyani III. 275, 481, 557).
[1007] Galeoti Martii de dictis et factis Matthiæ Regis cap. xi. (Schwandtneri Rer. Hungar. Script.).
[1008] Synod. Reg. ann. 1498 c. 16 (Batthyani I. 551).
[1009] Wiæ Hist. Episc. Camin. c. 41.—These irregularities were not of recent introduction. The canon referred to is copied almost literally from a synod held nearly forty years before by Bishop Henning. In fact, from the description given by the latter of the drinking, gambling, trading, and licentiousness of the ecclesiastics of Camin, there was little of the clerical character about them.—Synod. Camin. ann. 1454 (Hartzheim V. 930).
[1010] Wiæ Hist. Episc. Camin. c. 42.—Synod. Sedinens. c. 5.
In West Prussia, in 1497, the synod of Ermeland expresses itself as scandalized by the priests taking their companions publicly to fairs and other gatherings, and, to put a stop to the practice, it offers to secret informers one-half of the fine imposed on such indiscretions.—Synod. Warmiens. ann. 1497 c. xxxix. (Hartzheim V. 668).
[1011] Boissen Chron. Slesvicens. ann. 1494.
[1012] Robles, Vida del Card. Ximenes de Cisneros, cap. xii., xiii.—Robles was chaplain to Ximenes, and presumably derived his information from the cardinal himself.
[1013] Rursus in certis monasteriis dicti ordinis, ipsæ moniales apertis claustris, indifferenter omnes homines etiam suspectos intromittunt, ac extra monasteria in curiis, castris et plateis vagantes, plura scandala committunt.... Similiter religiosi qui in sacris ordinibus constituti non sunt, relicto habito regulari, matrimonium contrahere dicuntur.... Præterea omnes et singulos monachos et moniales regulam S. Benedicti hujusmodi expresse vel tacite professos, qui habitum monasticum sine dispensatione legitima reliquerunt aut matrimonia contraxerunt, ad monasteria, _si illa exiverunt_, redire et habitum monasticum ac velum nigrum reassumere dicta auctoritate compellatis.—App. ad Chron. Cassinens. Ed. Dubreul, pp. 902-3.
The words italicized would seem to indicate that monks and nuns occasionally married without even quitting their monasteries.
[1014] Perrens, Jérome Savonarole, p. 84.
[1015] Statut. Ord. Cisterc. ann. 1516 (Martene Thesaur. IV. 1636-7).
[1016] Thus, in 1193, the general chapter of the order promulgated the rule—“Si contigerit mulieres abbatiam ordinis nostri ex consensu intrare, ipse abbas a patre abbate deponatur absque retractatione. Et quicumque sine conscientia abbatis introduxerit, de domo ejiciatur, non reversurus, nisi per generale capitulum.”—(Capit. General. Cisterc. ann. 1193 cap. 6—apud Martene Thesaur. IV. 1276.) The strictness with which this was enforced is illustrated by the proceedings in 1205 against the abbot of the celebrated house of Pontigny, because he had allowed the Queen of France and her train to be present at a sermon in the chapel and a procession in the cloisters, and to spend two nights in the infirmary. He adduced in his defence a special rescript of the pope and a permission from the head of the order in favor of the queen, but these were pronounced insufficient, and sentence was passed that he merited instant deposition “quia tam enorme factum sustinuit, in totius ordinis injuriam,” but that in consequence of the powerful intercession of the Archbishop of Rheims and other bishops, he was allowed to escape with lighter punishment.—(Hist. Monast. Pontiniac.—Martene Thesaur. III. 1245.)
This rule, indeed, was almost universal in the ancient monasteries. The great abbey of St. Martin of Tours preserved it inviolate until the incursions of the Northmen rendered the house an asylum for the inhabitants of the surrounding territory, and the prohibition was subsequently revived and formally approved by Leo VII. in 938 (Leonis PP. VII. Epist. vi.). In that of Sithieu, from the time of its foundation early in the seventh century, it was preserved without infraction for more than three centuries. Even the license of the Carlovingian revolution did not cause its inobservance; and when, amid the disorders of the tenth century, the Counts of Flanders became lay abbots of the convent, and discipline was almost forgotten, the mediation of two bishops was required to obtain permission, about the year 940, for Adela, Countess of Flanders, prostrated with mortal sickness, to be carried in and laid before the altar, where she miraculously recovered.—(De Mirac. S. Bertin. Lib. II. c. 12—Chron. S. Bertin. c. 23, 24.)
So when Boniface founded the abbey of Fulda, he prohibited the entrance of women in any of the buildings, even including the church. The rule was preserved uninfringed through all the license of the tenth and eleventh centuries, and when, in 1132, the Emperor Lothair came to Fulda to celebrate Pentecost, his empress was not allowed to witness the ceremonies. So when Frederic Barbarossa, in 1135, spent his Easter there, he was not permitted to enter the town, because his wife was with him. In 1398 Boniface IX., at the request of the Abbot John Merlaw, relaxed the rule and permitted women to attend at the services of the church—shortly after which it was destroyed by lightning, as a warning for the future.—(Paullini Chron. Badeslebiens. $ viii.)—An equally convincing indication of the favor with which this regulation was regarded by Heaven was afforded when Abbot Helisacar, about the year 830, introduced it in the celebrated monastery of St. Riquier, and immediately the number of miracles worked by the relics of the Saint increased in a notable degree (Chron. Centulensis Lib. III. cap. iv).—At the Grande Chartreuse, founded by St. Bruno towards the end of the eleventh century, women were not even allowed to enter on the lands of the community.—Chart. S. Hugon. Gratianopolit. (Patrolog. T. 166, p. 1571).
[1017] Anon. Carthus. de Relig. Orig. cap. XL. (Martene Ampliss. Coll. VI. 93).
[1018] Johan. de Trittenheim Lib. Lugubris de Statu et Ruina Monast. Ordinis cap. iii.
[1019] Annuntia populo fideli meo, et dic quod Filius meus avaritiam, superbiam et luxuriam clericorum et sacerdotum amplius sustinere nec possit nec velit. Unde nisi se quantocius emendaverint, totus mundus propter eorum scelera periclitabitur.—Trithem. Chron. Hirsaug. ann. 1476.
[1020] Quum pene in omnibus conciliis et a plerisque Romanis pontificibus super cohibenda et punienda clericorum incontinentia, et eorum honestate servanda multa hactenus emanaverint constituta; et nullatenus ipsorum reformari quiverit correctio morum: ... videretur pensandum an expediret et posset provideri quod in ecclesia Occidentali, quantum ad votum continentiæ, servaretur consuetudo ecclesiæ Orientalis, quantum ad promovendos, potissime quum tempore Apostolorum consuetudo ecclesiæ Orientalis servaretur.—Durand. de Modo General. Concil. P. II. rubr. 46 (Calixtus, p. 537).
[1021] Card. Zabarellæ Capit. Agend. in Concil. Constant. cap. xii. (Von der Hardt T. I. P. ix. p. 525).
[1022] Zaccaria, Nuova Giustificaz. pp. 121-2.—Milman, Latin Christ.